#tw dead body description
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
Sleepless
Since she entered the building, the quiet has been ringing in her ears â although the hospital hasnât been a silent place itself. Between noises, conversations, laughs and cries she can hear it crawling behind her, whispering, no matter how senseless it seems to be. Everything blurs into the one yet she wasnât alone and maybe she wished she was, as it was the constant reminder that now thereâs nothing to fill that void.
It is with her and it's going to stick with her til the very end.
It's early â the sun is about to rise, dark skies still. The world outside is just waking up, still in its sleepy, slow course, only to rush with the full force soon. It doesnât matter to her, she hasnât closed her eyes peacefully in years. Nightmares have made her sleepless as well as the thought that she shouldn't rest, determined to protect. But to protect who? And exactly in this quiet, she would realize that they were their own people. And her? An abandoned guardian, you could say, who just has understood â âIâm not a part of their lives anymore.â
Yet, Boonchuys had called her. As she was laying restless, fully awake, in an empty, dark room, it immediately alarmed her, when she saw the familiar âAnneâ on the screen, and she picked up, concerned. It concerned her even more when she didnât hear Anne's voice, instead meeting the voice of tired Ms. Boonchuy. And she had left the house as quickly as she could, not caring if the other house residents could hear her. It was the last thing in the world she would be worried about.
She barely notices Boonchuys standing in the hallway. To be honest, they notice her before she does and in the same second they rush toward her to hug her tightly. It surprises her, as her body tenses â why, she canât exactly tell.Â
Her body is working automatically, while her mind isnât even registering whatâs happening â from one point to another, to suddenly find herself in a new place â and she can't even tell how and when she got here. Very specific type of brain fog that she used to have all the time during her time in Amphibia â endless fights and she wasnât even able to say how the blood was dripping from her blades. Her therapist said it was her coping mechanism â the answer to the trauma, the only way she still didnât fall apart.
Or maybe â she had fallen apart a long time ago and now there were no pieces to pick up and put together.
Then, they stand back and she sees how similar they are to her, which chills her. They look like ghosts. The same pale faces with bags under their puffy eyes and distant look, like they arenât here. Theyâre still in their pajamas, with jackets thrown on. But, somehow, they fit into the scenery around three of them â but the hospital is cold, emotionless, while theyâre openly grieving.Â
The war never was over, she thinks, it keeps coming back.
âI am so sorry,â Mrs. Boonchuy finally says. Her voice shakes a little. Mr. Boonchuy gently squeezes her shoulder.
And Sasha just knows.Â
âShe wasâŠâ Mr. Boonchuy speaks hoarsely, gulping. âShe was healthy. She even had a check-up not so long ago, everything seemed fine.â Sasha just stares numbly, any word from him barely reaches her. âNo one from our family hadâ had left like that. They have to run a few more tests but they said it could be something like sudden cardiac arrestâ SADS, they said. I donât know, it just happensââ He hides his face in his hands and takes a few deep, shaky breaths. âIâm sorry.â
âCan I see her?â She asks.
Hesitation crosses their faces, but in the end â theyâre not surprised. Though, to be honest, they may think about her question as bold but they have to know, right? Itâs difficult for her as for them â they have lost their only child and she has lost the person who helped her find herself again, in so many various ways. It still sounds impossible. Maybe thatâs why she has to completely make sure itâs not her brain fooling her, not a fever dream, but a harsh reality.
Reality without her.
Eventually, Mrs. Boonchuy nods.
âJustâ Let me get someone from the staff,â she says, before she leaves her husband and Sasha alone.
For some reason the clean, awfully sterile hallways of the hospital make Sasha incredibly overwhelmed.
She sits down in one of the plastic chairs that are so common for any public institution. She considers that maybe â this whole surrealistic situation she has found herself in â is not that rare in life and it could have happened to anybody.
Mr. Boonchuy sits next to her, leaning forward and sighs heavily. Side-eyeing him, she notices how in a few hours he seems to have gotten older by at least ten years. Boonchuys donât deserve that. Anne doesnât deserve that. They lost her once, and got back, now sheâs not here anymore. It thrills her.
âWhat exactly happened?â She asks, breaking the silence between them. She doesnât want it being so palpable. She knows the overall situation â in the chaotic, short call that she received, Boonchuys told her that their daughter had stopped breathing but no one knew why. And Sasha had to know to get another proof that was real.
âShe knew it would happen,â she says, understanding that Anne accepted it coming, âshe had to.â
Her heart failed. The Heart is gone. What an irony.
The realization hits her like a truck, as she remembers that weird, sad look in Anneâs eyes when they won the war. She never asked what this was about. She wishes she did, though.Â
Mr. Boonchuy smiles sadly. âThank you, Sasha. For being in her life.â
Sasha wants to tell him she wasnât that great part of Anneâs life â in fact, she caused her more pain than a friend should. Maybe, if she wasnât present in her life, she still would be alive. Sasha probably would still be the same manipulative, egocentric girl she used to be at age thirteen but at least â her actions wouldnât have such consequences. That probably doesnât make so much sense, but right now her brain just falls in the trap of guilt and she cannot stop it whenever she wants it or not.
Before she can say more, Mrs. Boonchuy is back with some kind of morgue technician, Sasha doesnât know. It doesnât matter anyway.
âYouâre Sasha, right?â Assistant asks and when she confirms, he nods. âCome with me.â
Sasha gets up from the chair and glances at Boonchuys before she walks away. They comfort each other and she realizes that they have only themselves now. How long will it take them to fill that void which appeared when Anne left? And she canât join them â sheâs not a part of their family, going through the kind of grief known only to them.
She still refuses to fully believe that Anne is gone.
Now, sheâs just a sixteen year old, who just has lost her best friend and who has to learn to live with this. Now she just has to believe that one day she will be okay, she will be alright and she will be complete. Now, she allows herself to cry and be a hurt child that she never has shown to the world.Â
Assistant leads her to the morgue. Sasha isnât afraid â she has seen death and dead bodies before, she was even a part of it. As time passed by it has made her immune due to constant exposition. No one leaves the war without scars on the body and soul. It doesnât mean that she doesnât feel anything at all, instead her emotions turn into one feeling that she canât identify.
Finally, they enter the room. Itâs not that big, itâs more similar to all the morgues she has seen in movies. White, square-patterned piles, cold lights, empty walls and in the back of the room â silver fridges where in one of them her friend is laying.
The assistant comes up to one of the fridges and opens it, sliding out the body tray. Sashaâs stomach curls up as she sees the familiar white sheet and the shape under it, which is, without any doubt, a body.
âBefore we start,â the assistant says, âtry to not touch it, okay? Iâll give you a while alone, if you want.â
She nods, so does he. He slowly pulls the sheet down, revealing the face of the girl that she knew so well.
At first, she looks like sheâs sleeping. But her skin is too pale, purplish-red in some spots, her limbs are stiff, and Sasha doesnât need to touch her to know that her body is coldly lifeless. In the air she can feel that specific smell, not similar to anything else. And she just stares, scanning every detail, absorbing the stillness as though to take it into herself. She doesnât even notice the assistant quietly sneaking out from the room â death never has been pretty, she knows it perfectly. Yet, that body once has been her hero, her villain, her savior, her downfall â with whom she grew up, laughed, fought and changed as a person â it was the girl that she has loved.
She just stares mindlessly and it feels so unreal. Anne had died once and she came back, she always does, so wouldnât she do it again? She canât wrap her head around the concept that, if Anne was dead, her body actually was here. She wanted to see the proof but when she does, now she canât understand it. This girl spent months in another dimension, destroyed the moon and saved two worlds, so, how come she could die in such a⊠ordinary way?
How come the only person in the reach that could understand her pain and truly comfort her â even if they stopped talking as often as they used to â is supposed to be buried six feet underground? How come is she supposed to get rid of hope that maybe one day things between them will heal and will be brighter? Coming back, they made an unsaid promise, they were closer and more distant, but, in fact, they never have let go of each other. Now, Sasha realizes â that for the rest of her life she will be the one whoâs restless every night.
âWake up,â she finally lets out, âwe were supposed to be sleepless together.â
The morgue keeps silent and eventually Sasha has to acknowledge that Anne will never, never ever again answer back.
In the future, she wonât be able to remember how exactly she left the room. Her mind never registers the last memory when she sees Anne and maybe â sheâs thankful for that. She just knows that in one moment, sheâs choking on her own tears, the next, the assistant is walking her to the Boonchuys. Everything blurs into one and they hug her so close as if she was their own child.Â
Itâs like hours but itâs also like seconds â when her breath calms down a little, they sit her down on the chair in the hallway. At this point, Sasha barely knows whatâs happening, but sheâs still here, whether she likes it or not. She hears something about funeral services and transplantation â God, there will be a funeral â but her mind just wanders in already lost thoughts. Then, it finds an actual realization.
âMarcy doesnât know, does she?â Sasha asks with a hoarse voice. She doesnât look at Boonchuys, staring at the floor instead.
âNo,â Mr. Boonchuy says gently after a short while, âwe havenât called her yet.â
âIâll do it.â Sasha slowly raises her head and she quickly wipes tears with her shaking hand.Â
They canât refuse, so they agree with a heavy heart.
Mrs. Boonchuy looks at her, somewhat hurt. âYou donât have toââ
âI want to do it,â she cuts in firmly, âplease.â
The quiet is getting even louder. Walls seem to be closer than before. And Marcy is unaware that their world just has ended. Sasha wishes she could protect her from more pain, but itâs also her job as a friend â to be truthful. This all makes her leave the building.Â
âHey Mars,â she chuckles painfully, âdo you have a while? Weâ We need to talk.â
She stands in front of the entrance and chooses Marcyâs number and waits in the dark, watching her breath in the cold air. Massachusetts is a few hours than from California, but it doesnât matter. Sasha knows Marcy is up. Itâs not like she can sleep as well, anyway. Finally, Marcy picks up.
âHey Sash.â Familiar voice answers. Although Marcy is thousands of miles away, for a little while Sasha feels her right next to her. Itâs bittersweet. âA bit early.â
#my ff#amphibia#ff#fanfiction#angst#sashanne#sasha waybright#anne boonchuy#hurt#tw death#tw dead body description
5 notes
·
View notes
Text
Part 2/2
By the time Stanley had realized he wasn't as alone as he believed himself to be entrapped in this ravenous abyss; he had honestly begun to suspect that he was finally starting to properly lose his mind.
In all the ceaseless miles that Stanley had journeyed during his apparent permanent residence within the dark devouring void, not once had he encountered another conscious, walking, talking being similar to himself. Every other formerly living creature that he had crossed paths with had been so... silent. Empty. Dead, in every sense of the word. It was as though the very essence of life itself had been sucked out of their bodies with a straw, their forms slowly falling apart piece by piece under the vicious gluttony of the darkness that surrounded them. They looked like they actually were supposed to be there, unmoving and comatose, unlike him.
So, when Stanley first began to encounter the twins, all of a sudden, he wasn't the only one in the dark.
When meeting the first pair of them, he found himself standing in a lake.
He hadn't even noticed the changes at first. It felt as though he had been walking for weeks on end, his body moving purely on autopilot and his aching legs leading him towards a destination only it knew. A thick fog of forgetfulness and flickering memories had descended upon his brain like a heavy blanket of numbing static as he had traveled. In this absentminded state, he hadn't even realized that the ever-present undulating, buzzing darkness surrounding him had begun to gradually shift and morph to form a horizon line; stretching into tall looming cliffsides that almost seemed to close in on him. Once the nonexistent floor beneath his soles abruptly began to ripple and warp, like the disturbed surface of a shallow puddle; only then did he finally notice his transformed environment.
The transition was seamless, almost dream-like. One moment, he was still surrounded by that filthy, overwhelming abyss; and the next, his boots were suddenly plunged deep into the cold, dark lake water.
The silence didn't leave, however. It still choked and stuffed its way into Stanley's ears to clog up his mind with thick cotton; the eerie quiet not quite matching the calm, almost serene scenery the void seemed to have abruptly transformed itself into. Like a movie with its sound cut off; leaving only the unsettling hum of the projector to fill the empty air.
It was odd. The lake was surely incredibly deep. He could obviously tell from how thin and pathetically small the shores appeared all the way from where he now unceremoniously stood in the middle of the lake. Stan could look down and see the darkness below his feet swallow what meager light that managed to break through the murky waters. The overwhelming black almost seemed to beckon him, gaping and haunting; a bottomless underwater pit of pitch black that never seemed to end.
And yet, he didn't sink. Stanley remained perfectly level, the almost ink like waters stopping just at ankle level, as though he were held up just above the surface by some invisible force. Even the writhing waves seemed small and low, as though the waters were shy to climb up his legs further than that. It was odd, so very odd.
However, it wasn't nowhere near as odd as the sight that greeted him when he finally lifted his eyes from the waters.
Stanley had crossed paths with truly unbelievable sights in this strange somewhere; from bursting, collapsing stars; to the imploding heat death of entire universes, but none of them seemed to hold the candle to what he saw then when he lifted his eyes:
Children.
Two, to be exact. Two, nearly identical looking children stood motionless before him; completely soaked through to the bone as though they had taken a plunge into the frigid water that pooled around their ankles. It was a girl and a boy, both adorned with twin expressions utterly devoid of emotion, their wide eyed stare seeming to burn holes into his thin jacket. Their drenched clothes sagged off of their scrawny frames; thin rivulets of water dirpping off of them and disturbing the glassy surface of the water at their feet. The little girl's hair had messily stuck to her face in thin sodden strands, her cheeks still full and round with youth just like the boy's. They looked young. Too young to be in a place such as this.
Oh, but their eyes; their eyes.
They burned with such anger; such injustice, brighter than any dying star or galaxies he had ever seen. Anger towards the world, to fate, to whatever cruel deity that had deemed them fit to be sent to this wretched place so prematurely. They were too young to be here; to be entrapped like he was amongst this hungry darkness. And yet, here they were, sheer denial against their own untimely deaths being the only thing keeping them awake and conscious amongst the dead and rotting. A show of juvenile defiance to nature itself so vehement even the all-consumign darkness seemed hesitant to devour them whole just yet.
It saddened him. It saddened him to know that they belonged there, that they were supposed to be there. He could see it, he could feel it; they were dead. No amount of determination could deny that universal fact.
When they spoke, Stanley could hear anger:
Stan chuckled in a futile attempt to lighten the suddenly heavy atmosphere that threatened to crush him whole. "A lake monster? You kids and your imagination," he teased, hoping to somehow rid the poor kids of the haunted look that seemed to whirl in their glares. No child should have been burdened with such a knowing look; such eyes that looked like they had seen everything there was to see about the world, the horrid and the good.
Clearly, it had been the wrong thing to say, and Stanley's faux pas was rewarded with a scowl from the little boy. A world's worth of sour contempt etched into every contorted groove that his grimace seemed to dig into his much too young face. Stan suddenly felt guilt squeeze at his weary bones for having caused that.
"That's what they all said," the boy spat out, eyes shining with a sheen of wetness Stan wasn't sure he was prepared to deal with.
Stan left that first interaction with the twins with the feeling of guilt and sorrow still clining to him.
He couldn't have known, at the time. He couldn't have known that this wouldn't be anywhere near the last time that he would meet the pair. He hadn't realised just how many of them there were. After that first pair, his endless journeying within the Abyss was hardly be spent alone anymore. Countless more times, he came face to face with the exact same two young and impossibly worn faces; forced to meet one pair of beaten and bruised kids after another.
Not one pair had died the same death as another. Some had gotten lost, prey to whatever threat that had snatched them up out in the open; some had fallen from high up; some had been crushed under an incredible weight; some had burned; some eaten alive; some zombified. Some didn't even seem physically harmed at all, body perfectly intact, and yet that same faraway, distrubed look in their eyes remained.
He thought the worst ones were the ones he found alone. A little girl or a little boy, left all lonesome without their other half there. Twins, he remembered a pair of them telling him once.
Once, he had come across a town full of silent, stone statues. It was a rustic, shabby, almost nostalgic looking town- odd and strangely familiar. The sight of it had tugged at an aged memory that had long since wasted away in the back of his mind. It was serene, almost deceptively so. The sun shone; the air smelled crisp and fresh; numerous waterfalls continued to crash down from the tall cliffsides; and a soft nonexistent breeze whistled through the thicket of pine trees that blanketed the outskirts of the town. None of it seemed to match the gruesome scene of the hundred wailing statues that littered every inch of the town.
He had found the boy's statue on the other side of town, deep within the green forest and toppled over the gnarled roots of a towering tree. Like the rest of the townsfolk, he too, was frozen mid-shriek; his stone face twisted and contorted into a mock impression of a silent scream as his body lay paused in a writhing struggle. He made sure to be gentle when he carried the boy's statue over to place it beside the girl's, whose statue stood far deeper into the forest, sporting the same rictus grimace of terror as her brother's. It somehow felt wrong for them to have been so far apart from one another, even in death.
He had come to dread meeting of the twins. He hated every second he had to confront yet another pair of dead children that did not belong here, but fate had decided they did. He despised having to listen to their tales of woe as they wept about the injustice of the world, of having died young; he despised himself for being unable to do more than weep with them.
"We don't belong here, Grunkle Stan," he would listen to the little girl weep, calling him a title he didn't recognize. He never remembered if they had ever told him their name, but they all seem to know his, without a fail. "If we're dead, then what about you? What about Grunkle Ford? Mom? Dad? What about them? We can't be dead, we can't be," they would say, confusion and frustration written all over their faces. They didn't understand. They didn't understand why they had come to the darkness so early, so unfairly.
He never knew what to say, he'd never been good with words.
All he could do was kneel down to their levels and engulf them in his arms, hoping he could somehow squeeze the pain straight out of their bodies in his embrace. He hugged them, because what else could he do?
#OKAY SO YOU KNOW THAT ONE SCENE IN THE BOOK OF BILL OR SMTH WHERE THEY SHOW ALL THE ALTERNATE UNIVERSE VERSION OF DIPPER AND MABEL#WHEN THEY WEREN'T AS LUCKY AS THEIR ORIGINAL COUNTERPARTS#THAT'S WHO STAN MEETS HERE#I need you people to know that I had to rewrite this whole thing like 3 times because my dumbass#was writing a whole ass fic in TUMBLR DRAFTS so obviously it kept deleting itself <3#but it was worth it for the Stan angst <3#watch how many trigger warnings I can fit in this post#tw child death#tw death#tw dead animals#tw graphic description#tw graphic violence#tw graphic#tw body horror#tw scopophobia#tw gore#TELL ME IF I GOTTA TAG MORE!!#gravity falls#gravity falls au#HWINEBHABWNAJCAHOWEEATOWEUB AU#stanley pines#stan pines#grunkle stan#dipper pines#mabel pines#pines twins#absolutely not beta read- so if there are any grammar mistakes or plot holes... shhhhhh you saw nothing...#my writing#my fic#my art
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
A Miracle In The Night
Sometimes, you get an idea for a lightly fucked up short story. TW: Death, mild gore, Plot Twist :)
---
She travels through the night And listens
Some might call her home dark and cold and akin to the lowest levels of hell, But their heaven burns her eyes and skin and her very breath To her, The Endless Night is Paradise
The whole world was like this once, in the very beginning The Divine Darkness which contains the potential for every tragedy and miracle and everything in between, and she is blessed to travel through the gardens of creation.
The Night created everything, even God, who lives in the burning world and blesses the sinless beings of the night with the very force of life.
But not even Paradise is free of suffering.
It should be this way, of course- nothing would ever happen otherwise. Everything that happens is a miracle. Itâs just a question of who the Miracle is for.
There will be a Miracle tonight. She can feel it- the tension is electric across her skin, gut tightening, every sense on edge.
Starvation leads to such peculiar sensitivity.
Sheâs on the verge of death-Â It should be this way, otherwise nothing could be alive. But sheâs closer to the edge than usual.
Itâs been so long since she felt the Burning Love of God within her. The delicious taste of good fortune in the night Chasing ecstasy with a racing heart and feeling her body fly The heat in her belly, seeping out through her until it filled her with the Divine Warmth of Godâs Love.
Itâs been so, so long since sheâs eaten.
Itâs been uneasy- the breathing of the world has been unsteady of late- too early and too late, out of time like it has become ill and all things suffer for it. There is nothing to partake of in her usual hunting grounds, so she has traveled far, far from home, into a brighter and hotter part of the night.
Here, the protective wall between her and the burning world exists only in scattered fragments, and strange and monstrous things traverse the thin veil between their worlds.
Here, the eternal night has been invaded by noxious, screaming beasts from the burning world above. They race with their bodies straddling the barrier between their worlds, far faster than anything has the right to fly, howling with a deafening voice that can be heard for hundreds of miles.
Itâs a problem because she cannot hear the songs of her prey.
Everything sings, if one will listen. The high, chiming pings of the smallest stars flashing with bioluminescence around her. The long, low songs of the fire-breathers, who hunt here in the abyss for one of her oldest brothers, but return to the barrier and briefly cross it to breathe before they return. Even the earth sings- the moan and crack of her body as she shifts her weight, the almost invisible inhale and exhale of her seasons. She even builds great musical instruments of ash and smoke and an even hotter burning than the world above, singing the tale of the first days of creation in honor of the endless night.
But the behemoths do not sing.
They scream and scream and scream and their piss reeks of vile poison and overexertion. Almost like the way an injured animal can put on a miraculous turn of speed to escape pursuit. What might be pursuing such behemoths is an awful but intriguing consideration. Perhaps the behemoths are the little darting beings of the burning world, and the thing they flee the equivalent of herself. Sheâs seen it before, when the moon is high and she travels up to the barrier, and the little dancing bodies leap across the barrier to avoid her.
To that end, she can only wish her counterpart good hunting- both in the sympathy between one apex predator and another, and the hope that maybe it will get better at catching the behemoths before they come into her world.
Still, Where there is disturbance, There is also opportunity.
There are rumors from those that live closer to the barrier that the behemoths piss poison but shit out bounties- the wastes of these things are food direct from the burning world, where God lives, and that waste is full of The Divine Warmth of Life. The direct waste is devoured by the smallest and fastest things first, but when they are clustered at their feast, they are easier for the larger beings to partake in, and so too larger things than they until even her most beautiful borderland sister with the belly pale as the moon is now as round as it, fat with the blessing of pups.
So she has ventured as close as she dares to the world of her sisters in hopes of finding the rumored prey so full of the Burning Love of God.
She needs it. She canât live without it.
A Miracle will happen tonight.
Whether for her or the crawling lives of the deepest night remains to be seen.
She follows the terrible screaming song of the behemoth in silence and prays for a miracle. She does not sing praise when she prays. She preys when she prays.
The highest reverence to The Divine Night is to Listen. To travel in silence, and take in all the songs of The Night.
So she makes herself silent and listens and listens and listens to the screaming song, hoping that somewhere in the noise, she can hear the soft voice of God.
This time God answers with a voice like thunder.
It really is like being too close to a lightning strike, the way the noise viscerally passes through her and lights up every nerve, teeth gritting and body thrashing as she feels the voice of God the same way she feels the body of a lover against her own.
The scream of the behemoth changes. It sputters, then pitches wildly, low visceral injury and high keening pain, like the fire-breathers when they try to hunt the largest of her brothers and become prey themselves.
Oh, what a beautiful song to something like her.
She aches, weak and tired, but hope and joy surge through her and she forces herself to move at speed, even for all the energy it takes, because perhaps the miracle is for her tonight-Â
She flies as fast as she can towards the dying behemoth, as does every brother and sister and ancestor and descendant, all as desperate to feast upon Godâs Love as she- all of them race forward but then up, and up and up up to where the Behemoth is sinking into their world- It has run upon a fragment of the protective barrier hard enough to tear it's side and break it's back. There is the terrible acrid scent of itâs noxious piss and if she were not on the verge of starvation it might be enough to put her off the feast. Â
But she flies on and up- even weak with hunger she is one of the largest and fastest of her family when she needs to be, so she is the first to smell other strange things from the behemoth- burning flavors that sting her nose and mouth, as well as sweet things that confuse intrigue, and-
Oh. Oh, GOD!
Itâs blood but nothing like any blood sheâs tasted before- itâs actually HOT in the night, burning with the warmth of the other world even this far from itâs origin, rich and fatty and metallic like the flesh of a fallen fire-breather but even more so. She spreads her wings and sways her hips and spine to fly as fast as she can, the way a lover pursues her- full of nothing but adoration and a desire to make their bodies as one.
Then in a beam of moonlight, she sees the first of the bodies from the burning world.
The frenzy at the behemoth is a feast for the ages, from the exultant chorus above, and the fact that even with every member of her family for a hundred miles around at the feast, there are so many bodies to feast upon that a body is falling past the festivities to her, uneaten and whole.
What a strange and beautiful body it is.
She pauses, circling it even as her mouth and gut ache for it, studying the being from the burning world.
Itâs hot, hotter than any body sheâs ever felt before, even though it is very definitely dead, as unsuited to breathe the night as she is to breathe fire. Its wings are long and twist strangely, like the tentacles of her brothers that are hunted by the fire-breathers. Itâs awkwardly shaped, like the crawling five-winged creatures of the mud, but not quite. There is an almost unsettling familiarity to its symmetry.
The fire-breathers say they used to live in the burning world, but returned to the night, and that all the beasts of the burning world had too once come from the night. It had sounded absurd, but looking upon the form of this being now, she wondered.
Well. Only the one thing to do, really.
Gently, she approaches the being, opens her mouth to embrace it, and welcomes it home to the night.
There is no love like the love the predator feels for its prey. It is reverence made flesh- O holy being, oh virtue to pursue and make oneâs own.It is the flesh made reverent- Please, little being of the burning world, let her love you as she loves her own children, the weight of your body deep within her own.Â
There is no gratitude like the gratitude a predator feels for its prey. She owes you her life tonight, little being of the burning world. She lives from the mercy of your body alone. It is already a kindness she can never repay to live by your generosity, but oh, you made it so sweet-Â Your blood intoxicates her senses, your body thrillingly warm- as agonizing as the fire of the burning world is to breathe in, itâs just as wonderful to swallow.
You are so sweet, so sweet, she will remember this favor forever.
There is no miracle like the divine connection between predator and prey. Oh child of the burning world, you who brings the Warmth of God into The Endless Night, You burning being of Godâs Love. She is blessed by you, messenger of God. Through you she receives the miracle of life.
Welcome, little burning being Welcome home to the night from whence you came Welcome inside her deepest self, and receive her hospitality.
She swallows the little burning being up with adoration, feeling it settle within her. Relief, ecstasy and satisfaction swirl but are interrupted by the appearance of another body. And another And another And another
The Behemoth itself falls, itâs body still curiously dynamic even torn in half- one end dives for the bottom of the night with somewhat alarming speed, where the other glides along to the depths on an angled path, the distant motion still visible with the bioluminescence it stirs up along itâs path. It is massive beyond anything she's seen before, more like a piece of geography than a living organism.
And all along its wake, hundreds of bodies spill forth from inside.
What a strange miracle this is. But sheâs not one to refuse Godâs Love. And if the beings of the burning world travel in huge schools with their behemoth, the peculiar notion that the little being within her might be lonely occurs to her. âŠWow, sheâs REALLY drunk.
Still, she eats three more of the burning beings before her guts are almost bursting with fullness, a bizarre sensation sheâd only heard about from those who had been fortunate enough to feast on the fallen body of a fire-breather and had to leave the excess to the crawling beings of the bottom. So too, does she watch more bodies descend deep into the night as she returns to her world of darkness and song, the behemothâs terrible screams now silent with rest, and the choir of the night rejoicing in this miracle.
---
Two miles above the revelry of Godâs Favorite Greenland Shark, the survivors of the Titanic prayed into the endless night for a miracle, unaware it had already been granted.
#Long Post under the cut#short fiction#tw death#tw description of a dead body#tw plot twist#I am intensely curious to know when people realize what's going on in the story :)
940 notes
·
View notes
Text
tw; vent, sewerslide, descriptions of sh
For like the past week Iâve been having very strong emotions, borderline rage that makes me violent (which prolly isnât like a big deal, but anger isnât an emotion Iâm used to), loneliness and isolation, wanting to cry constantly, and lots and lots and lots of suicid@l and self harming thoughts to the point where my skin feels like itâs burning n itching and crawling bc I canât let myself sh. I keep telling myself âitâs prolly cuz Iâm on my periodâ but that ended days ago so idk. Lots of times I feel like Iâm invalid and my thoughts n feelings donât matter, my trauma isnât âbad enoughâ, and I shouldnât talk abt sh but Iâve never actually cvt myself b4 (ive always self harmed in different ways so my family wouldnât notice) but at the end of the day that doesnât mean that I donât have strong urges and thoughts abt cvtting myself, and it doesnât mean that Iâm not affected by my trauma jus bc âit could have been worseâ. Idk. I have lots of friends and family that care, so I canât leave them rn, and I doubt I will when Iâm older, but it jus adds more frustration to the feelings Iâm already dealing w. I have no out, I jus have to sit here and wait til it gets better, thatâs so fucking infuriating. I feel unlikable, yes I have friends and family that love me, but it feels like none of them actually like talking to me or being friends w me, most of them donât like that Iâm queer, or they donât like my personality, I donât mesh well w old friends or family anymore, etc etc. itâs frustrating. Itâs blood boiling and frustrating. All of it. I wanna scream, I wanna pull my hair out, I wanna chop my limbs off, I wanna snap my neck, I want to swallow blades and burn my skin and hack up my chest and throw myself in front of traffic and so many other things, but I canât. It feels like I have no coping mechanism here, all my others have failed me, so Iâve resorted to rotting in my room, and if it gets worse in winter I seriously have no idea what Iâll do. But Iâll make it through.
this rlly isnât a cause to worry, Iâll be ok, I jus have no where else to put this, and feeling unheard drives me absolutely insane.
#tw vent#tw sh related#tw graphic description#tw sewerslide#tw sui ideation#im gonna cry#im dying#im dead#im over it#im so upset#body image issues#trauma#ftm trans#mental issues#mental health issues#kms#cw vent#iâm struggling#iâm lonely#iâm so tired#iâm exhausted#parkerdapupper
5 notes
·
View notes
Text
Chapter 5 of Pretty Little Thing is up! This week the Justice League is starting their investigation into Captain Marvelâs disappearance.
#shazam#billy batson#dc captain marvel#justice league#batman#dc comics#tw: description of a dead body#keep an eye on those timeline clues
31 notes
·
View notes
Text
Smiling Critters: New Family Part 1 chapter 1 segment 5 : NIGHT TERRORS
TW: DEAD BODIES AND GORE
*Theodore wakes up to see the sky is still dark*
"how long did I sleep for?"
*he turns to the alarm clock in Baz's room but it isn't working properly*
"Where is everyone"
*Theodore walks upstairs to the room of Baz's mom, however he sees nobody up there*
"strange, I thought she would have been here, she has work tomorrow"
*Theodore walks downstairs thinking about where to go next. He leaves Baz's room the other way.*
"nobody here... What's that smell?"
*Theodore walks into the dark kitchen and looks on the counter, there's a plate of food left out*
"that must be the smell"
*Theodore enters the living room seeing nobody and then tries to go outside, however he hesitates at the door knowing that he shouldn't go outside or else he might get caught.*
"maybe I should just wait for them, I'll just grab a glass of milk and go back to bed"
*Theodore goes into the kitchen again this time turning on the light to find the glass however something else catches his eye*
"what... is that?"
*Theodore sees the basement door slightly open with a bit of a red liquid trailing downstairs*
"what's going on? Guys is this a prank? Guys this isn't funny!"
*Theodore shakily goes for the door opening it slightly. As he walks downstairs, he notes that the red liquid is too similar to blood, down to the smell*
"this... This is real blood, isn't it..."
*the more he walks down the stairs the more a pungent smell grows, making Theodore sick to the stomach. Theodore then opens the basement door. The smell instantly becomes 10 times more potent, nearly knocking Theodore to the ground.*
"oh God WHAT IS THAT SMELL, DID ONE OF THE CATS GO ON A RAT KILLING SPREE?"
*then he see something that truly breaks him...*
(this is where the trigger warning begins, and it's worse than before)
*he sees the dead bodies of Baz, Thomas, Ella, and Edgar. all of their bodies are covered in scratch marks still fresh. They're all missing different parts of their body. (I'm not even sure I'm allowed to talk about what parts are missing) Theodore is silent, rooted in place with fear, he feels like there's a knot in his throat keeping him from screaming, or even making a tiny sound. As he's trying to grapple with the situation he sees something come from the shadows, a skeletal arm made of metal. Theodore instantly knows who this is.*
"you..."
?"hello Theodore, long time no see"?
"why?.. How?.."
?"oh Theodore, so foolish, doesn't even remember what he did"?
"what I- no... No no no... NO NO NO!
I DIDN'T DO THIS. YOU... YOU'RE LYING!"
?"oh child, I didn't even lay a hand on them, that was all you."?
*the skeletal hand reaches out for Theodore*
"STAY AWAY FROM ME!"
*Theodore makes a mad dash for the basement door, up the stairs and through the living room, however just as he's going to escape he's grabbed by the hand and dragged into the darkness. And then he wakes up, screaming, making everyone else wake up*
"THEODORE ARE YOU OKAY?!"
"HOLY SHIT THEODORE!"
*Ella and Baz are completely silent but shocked*
"THEODORE, CALM DOWN!"
"BREATHE IN AND OUT"
*Theodore isn't listening, tears streaming down his face, his mind is racing with thoughts of the nightmare he just had, he feels like he can barely breathe. His body is trembling, he feels as weak as paper. Thomas attempts to hug Theodore but Theodore pushes Thomas away, accidentally knocking himself off the bed and Thomas into the wall*
"THEODORE!"
*Theodore's vision and hearing is still blurry, his mind still racing, his tears still warm. Theodore can't focus on anything as his thoughts keep looping through his head. Pain in the back of his throat certainly isn't helping. Thomas tries again to come Theodore down as Edgar tries to get his attention, both of them failing miserably*
"HOW DO WE CALM HIM DOWN?!"
"THEODORE PLEASE!"
*Theodore snaps back to reality in a near instant*
"EDGAR WHY WOULD YOU DO THAT?!"
"DON'T SCREAM AT SOMEONE HAVING THIS KIND OF REACTION!"
*Theodore is still breathing heavily, although it's a bit slow compared to before. Is vision and hearing is returning, however it's very slow*
"Theodore, are you okay?!"
*Thomas picks up Theodore. he's bigger than he was before, he's taller than Baz now.*
"guys I think he's coming down!"
*after a bit Theodore manages to calm himself down. However he's too scared to open up about the nightmare he had. He doesn't want to scare the others*
"please Theodore, cooperate, what happened?"
"..."
"Theodore, please, trying to help you"
"..."
*Theodore is looking at his arm, tears still streaming down his face.*
(dear God what a screwed up segment. I actually had to cut part of it out because it might have just been too gory for Tumblr. The next segment will most likely be another calm segment to balance out the horror that this one placed into the story)
Previous Part:
Next Part:
First Part:
#poppy playtime#smiling critters#poppy playtime au#smiling critters au#new family au#smiling critters catnap#poppy playtime catnap#catnap#smiling critters dogday#poppy playtime dogday#dogday#poppy playtime bubba bubbaphant#smiling critters bubba bubbaphant#bubba bubbaphant#smiling critters bobby bearhug#poppy playtime bobby bearhug#bobby bearhug#tw dead body#tw gore#tw descriptions of gore
3 notes
·
View notes
Text
Veneur
veneur - noun. Old French - 'hunstman.'
-
It starts with a call.
"Theo, hey, it's Dan. We...we found something."
The hills of Quarry Mountain Colorado in the late fall wasn't something anyone really wanted much to do with. Too early in the season for snow, and all the boarders and skiiers not having populated the slopes, too late in the season for the summer hikers and campers to want to brave the wet and the cold.
Theo wasn't here for fun, though.
He's met at the given location by the man he spoke to on the phone, and a girl he's not met before.
Theo and Dan shake hands, Dan younger than him, but his hands no less strong and capable, and willing to do what was necessary. If Theo were to think about it for longer than the time it took to share a beer, he might consider Dan someone he'd end up passing his mantel to. But again, that wasn't why he was here.
"Where did you find it?" Theo asks, beginning to move onwards down the wet, misty path. Even this far out, the way was covered with gravel and stones, well-kept and seen to. It crunches loudly in the relative quiet of the woods around them as he walks, a steady pace. Dan keeps up with him, and the girl follows along.
"About a mile ahead, off the trail. One of the locals said they'd found a while engine block pretty well disassembled downstream, and then the rest of the car further upstream. Looked like an accident, probably having gone right over the edge of a turn."
Theo hums.
"No one had come to claim it, so they ran the plates and it belonged to a couple that has been reported missing all the way in Idaho few weeks ago. Family apparently said they were going on a last-hurrah for the season camping venture, and just. Dropped off the face of the planet."
They round the corner, and though the well-marked trail continued on, Dan takes the lead now and starts into the brush. It's clear from the broken twigs and stamped, dead foliage that this divergence was already becoming more used. Theo makes a note to direct them to alternate routes in the near future, for however long they were going to be necessary.
Their work required them to be as concealed as what they hunted.
"Then, yesterday morning, Jackie here," Dan then gestures back to the girl following along, who perks up at the mention of her name, back straightening under the sudden gaze of the two, "says she wanted to go for a walk for her off-shift."
"I usually do sweeps, but we were rearranging some schedules, and my sleep pattern has gotten all bungled up, so since it was broad daylight, I figured why not. I'll get to know the area more at least."
"No partner?" Theo asks.
Immediately, Jackie's shoulders stiffen. He doesn't say it like one, voice perfectly neutral, but the answer itself is more than a confession of wrongdoing.
"Um. No, sir. I went by myself."
Theo then stops their walk, and turns to properly face Jackie. He glances at Dan. He points to Jackie's coat. "What are you carrying."
She jumps to comply, and unzips the coat, pulling it open. Inside, strapped to her chest, is a handgun on the left, to be pulled with the right. A pouch at her side, carrying silver rounds. At her hip, strapped just as securely, is three thick, silver-tipped ash-wood stakes.
Theo nods. "Good. Don't go out alone again. If you had the notion that this is the confirmation that you believe it to be, then you should know better than to tempt fate."
Jackie rezips her coat and nods. "Yes sir."
They resume the walk.
"Continue," Theo prompts after a few moment of silence.
"Uh, well. I went for a walk, and I just. Sort of stumbled on it."
"It."
"The bodies, sir."
-
At the site, they are joined by the rest of the hunter cell. Three others, aside from Jackie and Dan. Theo doesn't pay them much mind as he lights a smoke and confers with Dan over what his own examination of the findings had come to.
Two bodies - one male, one female. No identifying clothing, no wallets or items with the bodies to give much of a hint without family identification or dental records. Even with the couple weeks of exposure, however, the cold and the high altitude meant slower decomposition, which allowed Theo to notice what he needed.
"The broken necks threw us off, which admittedly is why I did hesitate to call you," Dan says.
Theo shakes his head. "I know. Better to be sure than to alert the police and lose evidence. But it happened after death."
"Yeah?" Dan hedges.
"Mm. They want it live and warm for as long as possible. The minute the body ceases all living functions they're on a time limit and won't get as much from a hunt."
Theo takes another pull of the cigarette. "Hands, too."
"Right. The fingernails."
Filled with old blood, both their own from fighting so hard they almost tore off in the struggle, and from sinking into immortal flesh to try and fight off the beast.
It was always in the details.
Dislocated jaws, punctures just below the temple where the arteries crossed the hinge. Wounds to the scalp where the skin was gripped hard enough to pull away from the flesh. Broken wrists, mauled thighs where the femoral artery ran just under the surface of the skin, but dug into all the way down to make striations on the bone. Little scrapes that were set just about an inch and a half apart.
"So what do you think?" Dan asks, watching his mentor closely.
Theo glances at him, and then around to the hills. It wasn't quite quiet yet. Snow would turn everything into a silent wonderland, alien to itself the rest of the year. For now, there was still birdsong in the trees, the last of the late-stayers. The last of the fall leaves that clung to the branches were limp and had lost their brilliance of autumn some weeks ago. The deer would be starting rut soon.
"I think it's about hunting season," Theo says, grimly.
3 notes
·
View notes
Note
[ hold ] â for the senderâs muse to hold the receiverâs muse by the face / neck gently and brush their thumbs along their cheeks to get them to focus on them. - Danbin anny verse
the intimacy of hands. âââ LEAGUE VERSE âââ [ hold ] â for the senderâs muse to hold the receiverâs muse by the face / neck gently and brush their thumbs along their cheeks to get them to focus on them.
"NO NO NO! WREN WAKE UP! PLEASE - "
How had he ended up back in the abyss of Zaun? His hands cradled his little brother's head as he stared down into wide, horrified eyes that had long stopped their leaking of tears. Robin's thumbs brushed across his supple cheeks, carving through the dried and gritty vomit surrounding the child's mouth - why had he not come home that night? Was staying in Piltover's lavish, beautiful city worth all of this? Missing Wren's mini violin recital, hearing his mother call the academy day in and day out asking where he was? Mother - Robin's head snapped forward towards the hallway, his heart just about stopping when he saw them.
Three figures stared at him from the darkness of the door's threshold, his mother in a nightgown now splattered with the blood she had choked out of, his father's throat covered in crimson scratches, and Linnet....sweet, happy Linnet. Her once rosy and plump cheeks were now pallid and sunken in a mask of death; saliva continuously leaking from her widened mouth and onto the floor beneath her feet, puddling around her curled toes. The odor stung his eyes, too obvious in its sweetness, and Robin's stomach churned⊠however that motion was quickly put away and forgotten in an instant when the shuffling of feet rustled underneath him - Wren had seemingly vanished. No...not vanished, just joined next to the others which had, in the few moments Robin had turned away, stepped closer.
Their heads were like baubles that fell forward and side to side with each step, their flesh swiftly beginning to match the disgustingly putrid green shade of Zaun. Pale. Lifeless and coninuously draining as Robin shuffled backwards until his back hit the wall behind him, his hands barely even registered the stinging cuts from the broken glass scattered across the kitchen tiles. Those faces soon began to lose the many things one would attribute to a visage, that coded humans as...well, human. There was no longer any skin on his father's face, no lips to hide his cheerful grin of white ivories caked in red framing. Most of the flesh had rotted away from his mother's skull, leaving mostly bare bone or connective tendons sliding along her limp jaw. Linnet lacked eyelids, her once dazzling blue eyes burnt to ash within her sockets to leave only dark sunken pits behind. Each step pounded in his ears and he forced his gaze away when they finally passed through and came within reach, the skin of their hands rancid and appearing more like a layer of shed algae rather than flesh as the bodies grabbed at the air just before his face -
A harsh flinch rocked him back into reality, cementing him back into his Piltovan apartment where he slowly pushed himself upwards to sit and cough - the air still felt so thick, although now it was from humidity rather than any potential fumes. His eyes darted around to the bathroom door, his delirious gaze swore he still could see those blackened pits staring at him, waiting for him to come hither. Fat tears dribbled down his cheeks as a creeping nausea welled within him and he covered his mouth to cease the torrent of saliva from leaking from his lips. His throat burned like acid as he swallowed down the chunks of last evening's dinner, Robin's eyes were held open in pure terror as he kept his gaze locked on the door - was someone there? Was someone coming? He never had the money to bury their bodies - were they still rotting away in their beds -
Robin.
Robin?
"Robin!"
Moon filled eyes flashed over to his lover, hardly recognizing him for a moment in his panic - and when Danny reached out to touch him he quickly lashed out, smacking his hand away. It was a pathetic scuffle really, as Robin weeped and wheezed and his fiance struggled to get him to stay still for even a minute. Finally, Danny's hand caught his flittering bird's fingers and he squeezed them tight enough to register to Robin that he was really there. The killer had always hated mess, he hated bodily fluids, he hated how sticky people were but right now it seemed that the distaste was shoved to the backburner of his mind as he stared into Robin's eyes. Wintry lashes fell over his gaze a few times as he stared into the pale blue crystals upon his lover's face, how those dark brows stitched in concern and worry. His hand released Robin's only after a moment and instead his fingers traced the pillar of the mage's neck, careful and gentle in their motions as to not startle him anymore.
The darkness in his mind began to melt away under the warmth of Danny's palms, how they slid up his neck, to his jaw and finally rested upon the apples of his cheeks - squishing the mage just enough to make his eyes squint. Robin sniffled as he stared ahead, unable to move and unwilling to fight anymore - especially when Danny's thumbs began to trace the curves of his face,
"There you are, pretty bird... Just keep your eyes on me, it's alright; you're safe. No one is here but you and me."
They both knew that Danny had never been particularly good at realizing when things were bad within himself or Robin, but over time he had figured it out, and right now the mage was practically molding into his palms as he spoke. They'd both learned that there was nothing wrong with letting the people who love you help you, and that perhaps the best way to solve their own issues was to help someone else. And right now? Right now Robin understood entirely why he fell for Danny as hard as he did, as he was caressed and coaxed into the security of his fiance's arms and the pools of his eyes.
This situation seemed all too familiar, as though his life was mirroring and reflecting upon itself, although now there was no denying the sincerity of concern infront of him. How terrifying and magical it was to have found someone who's desires and wants were shaped so closely to his own. And within that symmetry Robin began to relax more and more as plush lips pressed between his eyes, and the affection only heightened when tender kisses met his forehead. Warmth encompassed the room once the lamp was pulled to life, rays of gold illuminating the area around the two men as they sat there in relative silence save for the pitter patter of rain on the glass of their window.
"Let me get you some water, I'm not leaving you, you can watch the whole time, ok?"
"...Okay."
His throat still stung when Danny rolled off of their bed, a noticeable little mew catching Robin's attention as their cat jumped up to comfort him next. He stroked between those soft fluffy ears, only taking pause when he noticed his fiance approaching towards that door - the bathroom door which still hid an endless maze of black behind its corners. His voice caught in his throat as he went to speak, to warn Danny but - the light flicked on to reveal nothing inside. How silly of him to think that the nightmares of his mind would bleed into reality... and so, he decided to instead focus on his cat, and the way Danny's hair bounced as he turned to grab a towel for Robin's mouth.
He was safe.
#ic#rp#the intimacy of hands#bells of black sunday#dannbin#i need a cool ship tag for them#death mention tw#vomit tw#blood tw#dead body tw#vivid descriptions of corpses#angst tw#this is long#im so sorry#im obsessed with them HA#âđđčđâ đž. đčđžđđ»đŒđđžđâđŒ ... ă áŽÊᎠáŽáŽáŽÉŽ-áŽÊáŽáŽ
áŽáŽÉąáŽ ă
2 notes
·
View notes
Text
Poppy War by R. F Kuang Review
Tw: body mutilation, graphic description of dead bodies, self-harm, drug abuse/addiction, rape, child rape, and forced marriage. In this story, Rin a war orphan raised by drug dealers was going to force her to marry an older man. So instead she competitive exam in the hope of being accepted to the most prestigious military school in the empire. Then a whole bunch of stuff happens. There is no review of this without telling you itâs based on the second Japanese and Chinese war that happened before and during World War 2. Which is worse than human war crimes in recent memory. Poppy War doesnât hold anything back. It shows the dark side of war and doesnât glorify it, which I like. The magic system is unique. Human contact with gods is a frame that is not good, as they see the world as a plaything and people as vessels. There a rich history of this world that makes it feel alive. The Mugen, who are Japanese people, are written to be as evil as they can be. While the war was popular, there were people who opposed it as well, especially toward the end. I know why itâs written like this because itâs from the point of view of Rin, who sees their war crimes and thinks everyone from that country is like this. But in real life, there are more people who opposed it and more after the war. Go read it for yourself; itâs an interesting read. The ending leave a bad taste in my mouth giving historical context of not only the victims and the people involved. And I get why it was written like this. To show the horror of war and how far a person is push. However, the real people who were involved suffered mental breakdowns throughout their lives and victims still alive today suffer from the fallout. Just didnât sit right for me how the character reacted. I donât know. Let me know what you guys think. Overall I give this 8/10.
#Poppy War#book series#Tw: body mutilation#Tw: graphic description of dead bodies#tw: self-harm#Tw: self-harm#Tw: drug abuse/addiction#TW: self-harm#TW: rape#Tw: child rape#Tw: forced marriage#book review#shut up Fire
0 notes
Text
Bingo, Bingo baby,
I love you, ain't that crazy ?
(Cartoon blood TW under the cut)
"I was too late to save them. They were simply a mangled, melting body when I finally did. Maybe if I wasn't such a coward, maybe if I hadn't left them to save my own sorry hide... but that's not an option anymore. No one can turn back the clock. I will live with this grief for as long as I am on this Earth, and my suffering will be the retribution for those hungry ghosts I left behind."
Hiiii this is a scribbly sketch of one of my characters from my universe that doesn't have a name bc I think it's funnier to just call it the military cult furries universe. Uhhh no context for it rn, but the character's name is Nahum (he/him) and that's all you need to know rn :3
Also urmmm art reveal !!! My sketches can be better than this I promise, I just wanted to enjoy the process of drawing this time around
#Mewos art#sketch#mixed media#traditional art#Yooo edgy artttt#blood tw#Descriptions of dead bodies#tw body horror#How do you tag art#I have so much respect for tumblr users ngl. Idk how y'all tag anything at all
1 note
·
View note
Text
Return The Favor
Summary: Stumbling in on your neighborâs chopped up body, an unlikely friendship forms between you and Toby. Striking a deal, you agree to help the killer and his friends, buying them necessary prescriptions. But when one visit turns to multiple, Toby becomes curious, finding a not so subtle love note hidden away.
Characters: Ticci Toby x Female Reader
SMUT WARNING MINORS DNI
TW: Mentions of death, explicit description of a dismembered body, decomposition, death, gore, obsession, vomit, throwing up, blood (non-sexual), blood (sexual), vaginal fingering, degradation, biting, overstimulation, squirting, creampie, vaginal, choking, gagging, somnophilia, rough, Toby literally goes insane about you, virginity kink, first time, desperation
Words: 9.4k
A/N: This shit long asl I'm so sorry... Characters in this story are not canonical!
Itâs said that when thereâs a dead body nearby, your body can sense it before your brain can.Â
Itâs almost like instinct, a survival nature programmed into your brain. Itâll start with goosebumps and chills running all over your body as if you were being watched, this uncomfortable sensation that you just canât rationalize. Then the anxiety sets in, body aching and sweating for no apparent reason but it just knows thereâs something wrong.Â
Finally, when youâve finally choked it up to just being your imagination, thatâs when youâll smell it. Throat instantly closing and nostrils flaring at the putrid stench of rot and gore. Itâs incomparable, no amount of food poisoning or disease compares to the sickness you feel in your stomach at the smell of a human body decomposing. Every instinct in your body pleading and begging you to get out of there, run as far away until you canât breathe anymore.Â
You would know. And it seemed like the boy huddled in front of you did too.Â
There was no real reason for you to even be in this house in the first place, but your all-too-good heart guilted you into it. You had just come home from work, mind tired and body sleepy as you unlocked your front door, tossing your bag onto the kitchen table inside. It was well past midnight, the diner you worked at closing way later than normal, but at least you made some good tips.Â
Sliding into your bedroom, you changed into more comfortable clothes, tying your hair back before stepping into your kitchen. You gripped the tiny journal lying on the counter, cracking the worn pages open to where you left off, scribbling your thoughts onto the paper. It was your nightly routine, journaling things you saw or did, a coping mechanism suggested by your therapist. It wasnât for anything intensive, just minor anxiety and self-image problems, always having negative thoughts about yourself. It helped. Glancing up, you looked through the tiny window above your sink, a clear view of your neighborâs back porch, Mr. Higgs, an older man who made it very difficult to be friendly. He was a hateful guy, always nitpicking your choice of decorations or specific outfits he didnât find appropriate. A real sweetheart, obviously.Â
But compared to his usual eight PM lights out, the living room lamp was still bright, shining directly through his open back porch door. That was odd. As long as you had known this guy, it wasnât like him to be up this late, let alone be outside. Every instinct told you to just clean up and go to bed, his angry ass probably scooting off a raccoon or something. But you just couldnât pass up that nagging feeling, your kindheartedness overpowering you. So, sighing, you tossed a hoodie on and slid out your back door, stepping down the porch steps into the cool grass.
You flinched as a flash of brown passed your vision, small and thin against the dark grass. Cooing, you kneeled down, holding your fingers out as Mr. Higgâs old cat, Addy, sniffed the air around you, pressing against your bare legs as she purred. The man was way too protective of his cat. Something was definitely wrong.
Standing again, Addy pranced away, meowing loudly behind you as your bare feet became wet against the midnight dew, grass sticking to your ankles as you walked, arms hugging yourself against the cold. This would probably just end with you getting told to mind your business and stomping back to bed upset, but it was the thought that counted. Gripping onto the porch rail, you stepped up his creaky wooden porch, knocking against the wooden frame of the open door.
âMr. Higgs? Everything alright?â You called into the room, refusing to go in. There was no response, you knocked again after a couple of seconds. Still nothing. You gulped, rubbing your arms against your sides, nerves wracking you. âOkay. Iâm coming in. Donât get mad 'cause you didnât answer me.â You called again, pressing past the door and wiping your wet feet on the welcome mat.Â
The house was quiet, the only light being the lamp sat on a coffee table adjacent to the old couch. All the furniture had an older look like something out of the eighties, it made you cringe. âMr. Higgs, are you home?â You shouted down the dark hallway, all the doors shut except for one at the end which you assumed to be his room. Hugging yourself, your legs felt anxious, your mind racing with all the reasons you shouldnât walk down there. There was no reason for it, this was all just probably some old guy who forgot to shut his door, but you just couldnât shake the feeling.
Taking a step down the hallway, thatâs when it started. Those feelings, like your body can feel shouldnât be there. The air suddenly grew thick, a nauseating feeling setting in against your chest, pressing down like a conscious weight. But you shook it off, telling yourself it was just you scaring yourself with all of those crime shows, but you shouldâve known better.
The door was cracked, moonlight from the open shades pressing against the doorframe, your hand flat against the wood as you pushed the door open. Then came the smell. It was stout, a putrid funk that wafted against the walls, souring the room. The room was dark, pupils blown wide as they fought to see, hand sliding against the wall and searching for a light switch. Your body was tense, senses on high alert against the dark, breathing ragged against the awful stench filling your senses. Your eyes were beginning to water, wondering what in the hell could be stinking this terribly, until you felt the switch, flipping it on.
Your first instinct was to throw up, throat constricting and stomach tightening, but you just couldnât move. You were petrified by the scene in front of you. Mr. Higgs was there, at least, what you could recognize of him. His head had been cleaved from his body, intensive amounts of blood staining his beige bedsheets. His cheeks were bloated, a gnarly purple color as his veins poked against his forehead, skin wrinkled and soaked in blood as his eyes rolled into the back of his head. They were yellow now, dark veins contrasting against the orbs as puss leaked from every hole on his expressionless face. The rest of his body was scattered, chunks of muscle shredded from his arms and hands like they had been cut off, legs more or less the same. His wide stomach was completely visible, his skin swollen and dark, bloated against the same liquids spilling from his pores. The blood was the worst part. It was just everywhere. Splattered on the sheets, the nightstand, even the walls, specks reaching the roof. You were so lost in your racing thoughts, your heart pounding heavily against your chest as you gripped the door tightly, knuckles white on the frame. You could feel the cold sweat drip down your brow, utter fear chilling your body.Â
You wouldnât have even noticed the tall boy standing in the corner if he hadnât flinched, eyes wide and locked on you. He was lanky, easily taller than you and pale. No, not pale, more gray. He had curly brown hair that fell in front of his eyes, his freckled cheeks flushed against the bandages across his jaw. A pair of goggles rested amongst his curls, a dark mask covering his nose and mouth. He wore dark wash jeans loose around his hips and a heavier brown hoodie that was stained with dark blood. Oh God. The boy didnât look much older than you despite his bruise battered skin. But he wasnât moving, wasnât talking, he was just watching.Â
His hands were behind his back, shoulders scrunched against the corner of the dark walls as you pressed back off the door frame, breathing ragged. âWho the hell are you?â You grimaced, tone coming across a lot more confident than you felt. The boy flinched, not out of fear, more like a bodily reaction. He refused to answer, eyes scanning around quickly until he pressed off the wall, sliding to the shuttered window and pinching the blinds open, scanning the night without explanation. Thatâs when you heard loud boots stepping up the porch steps, head spinning quickly down the hallway. âShit.â You heard him, the boyâs voice panicked and rough, his boots stepping quickly across the hardwood and into your vicinity. Panic strained you, head spinning back quickly before your vision was filled with his arms wrapping around you, palm slapping over your mouth as he pressed you to his chest.Â
You tried to fight back, mumbled pleas against his hand as you shouldered his arms, your back pressed firmly against him. He was dragging you into the room, your feet dragging as you struggled, clawing his arms away but he never budged, practically unaware of the scratches you were leaving on his hands. âF- Fuckinâ quit-â He growled quietly, pressing open the small closet doors and dragging you both in, quickly shutting the door as you heard the boots grow louder down the hallway. A sliver of light shone through the crack in the door, leaving you just enough room to see the gorey scene as you pressed off of him, his muscled arms refusing to let you go.
âToby?â A scratchy voice called into the room, the figure stepping through the door frame and into your line of sight. At his appearance, you froze completely, your body tense against the boy behind you. His arms gripped tighter, bandaged fingers digging into your cheek as he kept you quiet. He was horrifying.Â
This man was taller than the one in the closet with you, pasty skin a sharp contrast against his dark messy hair. His eyes were wide, pupils dark against his reddened scleras. He wore a white hoodie, dark jeans covered just the same with Mr. Higgâs blood. But the worst part, the part that made your heart pump in your throat, was his smile. It was etched in, flesh torn upwards into a mocked smile, teeth exposed from the side of his cheek. The area was mangled, seemingly unhealed as blood dried against the cut. He almost made Mr. Higgs seem not that bad.
âTwitch, come on,â He called again, hands shoved in his hoodie pocket as he strolled around the room, kicking Mr. Higgâs severed foot out of the way. âIâm gettinâ tired. This guy had some good beers and Iâm tryna get back home and drink âem.â He snickered, turning back out of the room and back down the hallway, his loud boots stomping against the old floors. Who you presumed to be Toby didnât let you go, arms just as tight around you as you gripping his hoodieâs sleeves tight. âFine then! If youâre gonna play fuckinâ hide and seek then Iâm leavinâ your ass here!â He called throughout the house, your body only untensing when you heard the back porch door slam shut, loud boots thunking down the porch and out of earshot.Â
You both waited a couple of seconds, heart thudding in your ears as arms slowly released you, palm unclasping from your mouth. Panicked, you slammed out of the closet, turning around quickly and facing Toby, back pressed against the nearest wall as you searched for something to defend yourself with. âD- Dumbass.â He grit, pressing out of the cramped closet and facing you, tugging at the sleeves of his hoodie. The stench of the room pressed harder than ever, making your head dizzy as you pressed out of the room and down the hallway, Toby quick on your heels. âWhoever the fuck you are, whatever the fuck you want, Iâm sure Mr. Higgs didnât have it. Why in Godâs name is he in pieces in his bedroom?â You hissed, gagging as the image replayed in your mind, turning into his kitchen and wracking the cupboards. When you found a small plastic cup, you ran water in through the sink, chugging the stout liquid down as you calmed your breathing. Toby stayed in the doorframe, crossing his arms. You probably shouldnât have let your guard down, knowing full and well what he had just down to your neighbor, but you figured if he was going to he would have already.
âItâs none of y- your business. I donât k- kill innocents, so you s- shoulda just stayed home, m- missy.â He growled back, stuttering through the words. You tossed the cup in the sink, the plastic clattering against the metal as you turned to face him, running your hands through your hair. âHard to when you guys so obviously left his door open. The bastards hounded me for years, youâd think Iâd be happy about his death, but not fucking like that.â You hissed, leaning back against the counter and crossing your arms, bare feet cold against the porcelain tiles. âI mean, Jesus. And I mean, thanks and all for the save back there, but how is killing him and saving me any different? Itâs just favoring one innocent over another.â Toby shook his head, sliding past you and tugging a drawer open, shovelling through old receipts until he found the stack he was searching for. He passed it to you, paper crinkling as you skimmed through, old pharmacy receipts for prescription medicine.Â
âH- Had the old bastard bu- buying our meds. Paid h- him off and everything. Un- Until he started g- giving us coun- counterfeits, sellinâ u- us out. He h- had to pay u- up somehowâŠâ He huffed, shoving his mask down off of his nose and under his chin, his thin lips chapped against the bandages hugging his cheeks. And of course, he was cute.Â
âSo he gets shredded?â You had to breathe through that sentence, throat tight with nausea. Toby nodded, a small smirk crooking at the corner of his lips. You grimaced, pressing off of the counter and through to the living room, the old furniture seeming a lot less homey now. You were going home, filing a police report, and praying to God these fuckers didnât come back to get you instead.Â
âU- Uh, might wa- wanna clean up, t- too,â Toby chuckled from behind you. You paused, confused as you looked around, stomach twisting as you looked down. Bloody footprints trekked through the kitchen behind you, a trail leading to your bare feet as you lift your knee, gagging at the sight of Mr. Higgâs blood coating your soles. Toby was laughing, the noise muffled against the ringing in your ears as you hunched over, stomach convulsing as you puked on the hardwood floors, your lunch from work coming back up. Head straining, you panted, wiping your lips. âOh, s- shit, okay.â Toby hissed, sliding to your side and raising you up, hugging you close to his side. He drug you through the door, stomach still churning as you watched your footprints faintly appear beneath you, purposefully dragging them through the grass to get the blood off. You felt disgusting, giving no fight as Toby brought you to your porch steps, helping you up. He was so bipolar, angry and distasteful for one second, then cautious and endearing the next. It really was like you were dealing with a teenager.Â
Addy circled your ankles, her dense fur tickling your skin and making you jump, Toby gripping your arms tighter. âOh, hi kitty.â You cooed, breathing deep as you kneeled down, scooping her up into your arms as Toby helped you up the rest of the steps. Without asking, he slid open your screen door, helping you both inside as Addy purred against your chest, Toby wary as he stared at her. You dropped her on the floor gently, Toby sliding the door shut as you hunched over your sink, cleaning your mouth and grabbing a rag for your feet. Toby still eyed Addy, fidgeting his nails as he followed her. âEver seen a cat before? She was Mr. Higgâs.â You chuckled, cleaning the soles of your feet off and tossing the rag into the sink, still feeling unclean. Toby nodded, rubbing his arms nervously as he looked back at you, smiling awkwardly. âYeah. Us- Used to have one. T- They kinda sc- scare me now.â Smiling, you scooped Addy up again, petting her soft fur as you brought her close to the boy, his neck twitching nervously.Â
How could this guy shred a man to pieces, but petting a cat was too frightening for him? You couldnât understand. Digressing, you gripped his wrist, steadying the twitches as you placed his hand on her back, rubbing gently as Toby flinched, breathing quickly. Addy purred, unbothered by the action as he became more comfortable, fingers playing with her fur before he pulled his hand back, breathing deep.
You were too nice for your own good, too easy at giving the benefit of the doubt. Of course, you would find the redeemable traits in a murderer, heart hurting for this boy who was more or less the same as you. Groaning, you dropped Addy, crossing your arms. âListen. What you did, itâs⊠For my own conscience, I canât let it happen again.â You grit, circling your countertop and sitting on a stool, your journal tucked in front of you as you fidgeted with the pages. âIf we can agree, Iâll buy your meds. I have a friend who can write me prescriptions, no questions asked. But I need you to understand, under no circumstances, are you allowed to harm me. Iâll call the cops.â Like the cops could stop these lunatics. But, you needed some type of leverage.Â
Toby thought quietly, eyes narrowed as he flinched uncomfortably against Addy rubbing on his shins, purring loudly. If you could hold your end, there would be no trouble, but he had to know he could rely on you. âTh- The meds arenât for m- me. My f- friends, they need âem to function, m- mentally⊠You g- gotta realize this is- is serious.â Even stuttering his voice was stern, arms crossed as he thought, contemplating. You nodded, brushing your hair from your face as you groaned, realizing how desperately you needed to learn to set boundaries. âI can get them. But you have to keep your end, too.â You hissed back, pinching your fingers nervously. Toby smiled, crossing his heart, literally. Rolling your eyes, you nodded, rubbing your face as you groaned. What the fuck were you even doing?Â
âIâll have them by the end of the week. Come later at night, copsâll be swarming for weeks thanks to you.â Toby nodded, sliding over to the counter and gripping your journal, tearing a page out as he wrote the list of prescriptions you would need to get. It was a hefty list, some of that shit intense. âAbou- About that,â He slid his mask up over his nose, sliding the screen door open as he stepped out, chuckling. âDo- Donât go outside. Gonna ma- make it look like a g- gas leak.â You could hear the smile in his voice as he shut the screen, sliding his hood over his head and peeling down the porch steps. Finally taking a deep breath, you stared at Addy, wondering what in the absolute fuck you were doing. Rest in hell, Mr. Higgs.
-
He made it look like a gas leak alright. The house was on fire in minutes, the bright orange flames lighting your room as you heard sirens in the distance, your other neighbors gathered outside their houses as you climbed into bed, groaning your displeasure. Cops and firefighters swarmed for days afterwards, investigating the area thoroughly, but never finding any remains of Mr. Higgs, his body buried somewhere far away. They eventually grew restless, the city quickly cleaned up the charred remains of the house and a new plan for construction was set in soon. It went over smoothly, no one even suspecting a thing.Â
The days passed slowly, nervousness building as the end of the week grew closer, feet shuffling as you stood in line at the pharmacy. You got the doctorâs notes easily, already called in and waiting to be picked up as you were handed a small paper bag, the pharmacist eyeing you closely as you hurried out. Once in your car, you rummaged the sack, eyes wide as you read the dosage instructions on each little pill bottle. You read each bottle carefully, cringing at the names of the contents: Thorazine, Prolixin, Haldol, and even Aripiprazole. They were all high-end antipsychotics, the list of treatments for schizophrenia and mania, along with treatment-resistant depression. The last bottle caught your eye, a quick Google search told you it was for tourette's. So his twitching wasnât just nervousness, huh. Shoveling the sack into your bag, you sped home, Toby well on his way as the sun set low.
The first week was easy, Toby in and out without so much as a hello, nodding his thanks as he bolted back into the woods, eyes dark and heavy. It was easy for you, moving along with your life despite the one night of the week. You felt easier, the boy quick about his stops with some chat, but never hanging around for too long, eyes always scanning the tree line nervously.Â
As weeks passed, he grew more comfortable, you learned that he was quick about stopping due to his friends, their curiosity about you making him nervous about losing his âdealer.â You learned to leave his meds on the counter, sometimes not even present when he would sneak in at the late hours of the night, your job taking precedence over your sleep schedule. But with all of this money being spent weekly on medicine, you had to pick up more time at work, everything being paid for out of pocket not to raise suspicion. You were sleeping more, journaling and your hobbies taking less importance until they were practically nonexistent. It was hard, your serving heart refusing to let you rest, making sure Toby got his medication is the most important thing. You were strained, to say the least.Â
However, surprisingly, after a couple of weeks, Toby wasnât in a hurry to leave. He had slid in like he always did, you sat at the counter eating your dinner as you scribbled through the pages of your notebook, summing up the previous days. You were exhausted, Toby making you jump slightly as he shut the screen door, rummaging through the paper sack. âG- Got any more?â He grinned shyly, sliding his mask and goggles off and tossing them onto the counter. You nodded to the fridge, an extra container of leftovers from the diner quickly opened in front of him as he shoveled it into his mouth. âItâs better heated up,â You laughed, shutting your journal as you slid off the stool, gripping the to-go container from him and popping it into the microwave. You both sat there awkwardly, Toby kneeling down to rub Addyâs back as she appeared beneath him, soft purrs echoing. He was still nervous, never petting her for too long before standing back up, the microwave beeping. The food came out steaming, sliding open a drawer and handing him a fork, Toby continued to shovel the food into his mouth. You hissed, holding his arm as the steaming food sizzled inside his mouth, it had to be burning him. âOh. Y- Yeah, I donât fe- feel pain. Thâs good, tho- though.â He grinned, slurping up more of the food. He acted like he hadnât had warm food in forever, stuffing his face and barely giving himself time to chew. You rolled your eyes, chuckling as he ate.
The stays became longer after that, his excuse being he was hungry, continuously raiding your fridge until you began to have food ready for him, prepping his meals along with your own. Thirty minutes turned to an hour, to two hours, and then eventually through the night. He would crash on your couch, Addy curled in his lap as the television blared some old movie. That was one of the only times you didnât see him ticcing, the cat acting as an anchor against his restless body. He looked truly comfortable, using your blankets and pillows to his advantage, beginning to invite himself to stay the night after a while.Â
You sat at the counter, Toby snoring loudly as he laid face first into the couch pillow, scribbling into your journal. It was the one thing you had time for, having to get up early for work as the soft glow of the kitchen light lit the pages. Toby was practically pushing himself into your life, his lack of manners and curious mannerisms leading him to take initiative. You were grateful for his friendliness, giving great detail of his missions with his friends and explaining that whole situation. Even still, you were wary.Â
But against your better judgment, your relationship with the killer was becoming less transactional. He brought you things to make for dinner, talked with you through your mutual sleepiness, and even took care of Addy when you were too delusional after work. For lack of a better word, he was becoming a friend, showing up for more than just his medication, even sometimes forgetting the bag and having to chase him down. He was infesting your life, arriving earlier than he should and leaving later than you cared for. The end of the week was becoming optional, the screen of your porch door sliding open nearly every night of the week Toby didnât have a mission. It was annoying but in a comforting way, like you both were becoming closer naturally despite your differences.Â
As you heard his snores, you groaned, rubbing your tired eyes as you began to write, letting your pencil guide on the page numbly as you wrote your thoughts. It wasnât directed at Toby on purpose, but the further you got down the page the further your heart sank, hand fisted in your hair as you rested your elbow on the cold marble counter. âAh, JesusâŠâ You grit, scribbling the final few words as you lean back, rubbing your head. The words werenât lies, more of a hard truth you werenât willing to accept, chalking it up that you were just tired and desperate. The words could have been about Toby, or they could have been about anyone, you didnât really care. Sighing, you tore the page out, folding it and shoving it into the back of the book, closing the pages quickly. Sleep sounded much easier as you flipped the kitchen light off, turning the volume of the television down as you trudged upstairs to your room, giving one last glance to the snoring boy and his matching cat.
-
Toby knew his mishaps with you, his moral compass long forgotten the more time he spent inside your home. He told himself it was just easier, food and shelter at his disposal whenever, but he knew better. It was so much more than just picking up medicine for Tim and Brian now, it was a solid relationship, a bond that was forming in his eyes.Â
It had been almost four months since the unfortunate death of your neighbor, a smile creeping every time he saw the charred flecks of wood buried in the overgrown grass. You had begun to leave the back door unlocked, reasoning that someone breaking and entering would be less of a hassle than him. That was what Toby really hooked onto the most about you, your humor about everything. Despite your hardships and the emotions you had to overcome, you held a caring heart, compassion always lacing every action. He found it admirable, your humor through your busy life. And, likewise, he did feel bad for making you work so much, tired eyes always hurting his heart whenever you were around. But, it wasnât like he could get a job, so he helped where he could, cleaning and learning to cook for your sake. He needed this medicine, for his friendâs and his own stability, even at your expense.
You were already nestled at your spot on the counter, writing your thoughts in that damn journal. You barely even looked up as he entered, diving for the fridge as he scooped up Addy with one arm, her purs a nice vibration against his shoulder. Popping the container in the microwave, he leaned in over your shoulder, trying to catch a glance at your scribbling before you shoved him off, closing the book quickly. âAh, ah, mind yours.â You smiled, forking your own food into your mouth. âO- Oh come on, [Y/N], just a pe- peak.â He smiled back, gathering his food as he began to eat, sliding onto his familiar spot on the couch. It was routine now: where you sat, what he watched, what you both talked about. He explained his latest mission with Masky in more detail than you enjoyed, pushing your food away as you groaned, hiding your face in your hands. You both laughed throughout the night before you whisked your food into the fridge, calling your goodnights before heading upstairs.Â
Toby continued to watch the television, brushing Addyâs back with his bandaged fingers as he sat his empty container to the side. His curiosity nudging him, he raised up, tossing his trash before he slid to the counter, you all too confidently leaving your journal there. Slipping back onto the couch, he began to flip through the pages, listening closely for your footsteps as he read your entries, smiling as they dated all the way back to your high school years.
It seemed as though everything you thought spilt onto these lines, emotions erratic between every page as he realized just how much of a people pleaser you really were. All through your recent years, it was nothing but service, acting through the goodness of your soul until it felt sickening, fake almost. He cringed, flipping quickly through but finding nothing juicy, no deep dark secrets that he felt were interesting. Sighing, he closed the journal, standing to set it back onto the counter, until a slip of paper fell from between the pages. Smiling, Toby leaned down, arms twitching as he slid the journal back onto the counter, leaning against the marble as he flipped the paper open, reading carefully.
âSometimes, when I think about it too hard, I get all emotional about myself. I know I put on a front, like everything I do Iâm in charge of and can handle, always putting everyone around me first. But what if I wanted to be put first? I do so much for the sake of others but it never seems to be returned, never compensated for the mental strain. Well, maybe I want to. Maybe I want to be loved like I see others, rough and real. I have no clue how I even would, I can barely handle touching myself before I'm overwhelmed. But I just want someone else to take the reins, show me that I don't have to work my brain so hard and can just numb out. That's not too much to ask, right? Just someone who can love me, not some creep or one night thing, someone who cares. If I never ask for anything again, that would be it. Someone who wants me for me.â
He could have died. The brunetteâs cheeks dark as he re-read the crumbled page, excitement coursing through him. In his mind, he wanted to storm upstairs and just rattle you then, showing you how good he could treat you. It was like a bomb had gone off, Toby having to pretend like him having a crush on you wasnât achingly obvious, convincing himself he just didnât know how to act around women. But now it was clear, his mind racing with a million wants and needs, body spasming under the excitement.Â
Convincing himself to leave, he slipped the note into his pocket, body buzzing with excitement as he slid out your door. He would be back, like always. But this time, he would show you what you truly needed, what only he could give you.Â
-
Like always, Toby left a note for the medication you needed to pick up, it sometimes changing week to week. Everything looked normal, the usual combination of pills reading off. But as you scanned the bottom, you groaned, shoving the paper into your pocket. Trilafon, Saphris, and⊠Plan B. As if your desperation for some affection couldnât have gotten much worse, your heart twisted, a lump growing. Whether it be for some girl he was laying or a girlfriend he already had, you didnât care, all you wanted was to get the medicine and go. Crawling into your bed sounded like a much more exciting activity than dwelling on the brunette, heart saddened in all the way you knew it shouldnât.Â
To make your night even better, Toby didnât show. It wasnât unusual, for him sometimes not to show up for days due to extensive missions. But a part of you longed to see him, especially after today, just to help your mind with the whole morning-after pill situation. So now, instead of imagining him surrounded by his friends on a mission, you imagined him towering over a girl. Strong arms holding her, body contorting to fit against hers⊠You couldâve been sick, shaking your head as you ate quickly and pressed upstairs, barely petting Addy before you slinked into bed, hauling the covers over your head.Â
It was lonely on nights without his presence in your house. But especially tonight, thoughts racing uncontrollably to the point of tears, thick droplets streaking down your face as your chest hurt, longing for a body, any body, to hold close to yours. Maybe you really were just a transactional thing.Â
-
Toby smiled as he trekked through the familiar stretch of woods to your house, heart racing in his chest. He had it all planned out, exactly what he wanted to do, his cock already twitching in his jeans.Â
He hadnât shown up tonight on purpose, hanging back at the mansion to take the best shower he could, Ben teasing him about how good he smelled as he was leaving. You had to be well in bed by now, body tired after working all day just for him. He would take care of you, showing just how grateful he was for how much you were giving up just for his friends and him. Pressing past the tree line, he smiled, pulling his hood down as all the lights in your home were out, signaling your retirement.Â
Pressing up the steps, he slid the screen door open quietly, careful not to alert you as he clicked it shut. Stripping his hoodie, he tossed it onto the couch, Addy purring light against the cushions. It was warm in your house, black t-shirt hugging his arms as he untucked it from his jeans, climbing up the steps, his mask and goggles quick to come off next.Â
He was too excited for his own good, boots stepping quietly against the old hardwood as he slinked to your door, fidgeting with the knob. A rush of your scent blew into his face, your perfume stout in your small bedroom, eyes searching around in the dark space for your bed. It wasnât hard with your breathing, quiet snores making him smile as he leaned against your mattress, admiring your unawareness. You looked so peaceful, his bandaged fingers tracing your cheeks and brushing your hair from your face, your skin flinching under his touch. âHi, babyâŠâ He whispered, the pet name sounding right against his tongue as he referred to you, tugging the sheets down.Â
Toby always knew how nice of a body you had, you sometimes sauntering around the house with shorts and a t-shirt and making his eyes trail just a little longer than normal. But now, under his cold hands, you were even more gorgeous. You were wearing an oversized shirt, a slight tug at the fabric revealing that you only had panties on underneath, you slightly stirring as his nails brushed your skin. The brunette was excitedly jittering, kicking his boots off as he climbed onto the bed, kneeling at your curled body sound asleep. You shifted, rolling onto your back as you breathed deep, stretching your arms before settling back into yourself. Toby could have died, your legs stretching out to rest around him, his cock twitching with interest against your now visible panties. A quiet sigh breathed through your lips.
That was all the invitation he needed. Running his cold hands under your shirt, he felt your warm skin and goosebumps rising as you squirmed under them. Your brows scrunched but Toby pressed further, running his fingers along your waist and up to your tits, palming the mounds gently as he smiled. It was crazy to him just how soft your skin was, not weathered or bruised from missions or nature, perfectly smooth under his axe-calloused hands. Pushing your shirt up to your chest, he gasped at your round tits, the weight so perfect in his hands as he pinched at your nipples, rubbing the nubs gently. Toby was never very sure of anything, always brushing through life at the command of others. But the one thing he was sure about? His love for boobs, especially yours.Â
Nudging closer between your legs, he rested your knees on his thighs, leaning down to your chest as he popped a nipple into your mouth, sucking gently. The nub was hard against his tongue, slowly circling as he massaged the opposite one in his palm, pinching your nipple gently. Thatâs when you began to stir, hands sliding against the bed and unconsciously searching for the cause of your sensitivity. Lazy hands pushed against his face, soft groans echoing in the boyâs ears as he popped off your nipple and moved to the next one. Your hands fingered through his hair, tugging lightly until your eyes were beginning to flutter, your mind slowly coming alive. Toby let off your tit, kissing along your chest and licking a stripe between your tits, humming as he watched your eyes slowly blink open, confusion rocking you. He kneaded your tits gently, tugging at your nipples as you realized what was happening, eyes slowly widening as you strained to sit up against him. âToby? Wha-â Your voice was scratchy, ridden with exhaustion as the brunette kissed up your neck to your cheeks, pushing you back down as he slotted himself flush between your legs. Slowly realizing what was happening, your cheeks flushed dark, hands pressing against his chest as you squirmed, nervously babbling as your body was still half asleep. âLay b- back, baby⊠Youâre so ti- tired, let me take c- care of youâŠâ Toby sighed, running his hands back down along your skin, relishing in the way your body nervously shook under him.
You physically could not believe what was happening. This had to be a dream, some sick trick your mind was playing as you felt cold fingers hook under your panties, sliding them down. Heavy eyes wide, you grabbed his arms, clenching your thighs together against his waist. âNo- No, wait- I donât even, I mean, Iâve never-â Toby was already shushing you, gripping your wrists together and kissing your palms before pushing them back down to your sides, resuming his tug down your thighs. âIâve go- got you. Don- Donât gotta worry about a- a thingâŠâ He smiled, raising your legs up to slide your panties down the rest of the way, hooking them off of your raised ankles before pulling you down closer to him, pushing your shirt over your head. âRead y- your journal, you don- don't gotta act protective, ba- baby. I know this is what y- you wantâŠâ If you werenât already panicking, you definitely were now.Â
You wanted to hound him for snooping through your journal, mouth opening to tell him off. But as his fingers brushed against the inside of your thigh, dangerously close to your folds, you lost all train of thought. He was watching you, eyes excited in the darkness of your room as he swiped his thumb closer again, your thighs flinching shut. âAnyone else e- ever touched here before?â He mumbled, pressing his thumb against your plump lips and tugging them open, getting a nice look at the wetness that was already forming between your folds. Shaking your head, Toby lit up, cock pushing hard against his jeans as he had to adjust his position, using both hands to pull your lips apart, sighing at how pretty your cunt was. Just something about knowing that Toby was claiming his stake on you, imprinting his touch for the first time before anyone else could, made something deep inside of him burn. It wasnât like the brunette got much play himself, hooking up with a girl here and there, but being your first? That already made this so much better than any other girl could even try.Â
Sliding his fingers through your wetness, you gasped, hands clutching the pillow behind your head as he groaned, spreading your arousal across your lower abdomen. You whined, thighs begging to clench together as he purposefully slid your juices over your cunt, pressing his thumb down against your swollen clit and jolting your back off the mattress. You had only ever masturbated here and there, your body getting too overwhelmed after one orgasm and forcing you to stop, but would Toby stop? As he brought his fingers to his lips and sucked them into his mouth, you doubted his restraint.
âPlease be gentleâŠâ You warned, hands planting on the mattress as you sat up, resting on your elbows as you watched Toby bring his digits back down to your cunt. He rolled his eyes playfully, tugging your folds open with his opposite hand as he pressed the tips of his fingers against your entrance, pressing in slowly. âIâll tryâŠâ He laughed, your fingers gripping the sheets tight as you watched his fingers sink in slow, stretching your cunt uncomfortably. His index and middle fingers screwed into your tight walls gently, twisting his wrist to draw a moan from your lips, digits spreading against your gummy walls and making your entrance ache. âJust i- imagine my dick in hereâŠâ He cooed, eyes darting between your nervous face and your pretty cunt fluttering around just his fingers, barely even handling them.Â
Pressing his opposite thumb against your clit, he began to rub in small circles, dragging your hips further and further off of the mattress until you were practically rolling your hips against him. His fingers probed in and out of your cunt at a slow pace, just enough to make you comfortable with the unfamiliar intrusion, but his arms ached to go faster, curl his fingers until you spasmed. âTobyâŠâ You sighed, his hands moving in time with other as he screwed his fingers inside of you, angling them just enough so they pressed against your tight walls. His name sounded like heaven against your aroused tongue, so quiet but so desperate, secretly drawling for more. âTell me w- what you want, ba- babyâŠâ The pet name made your face hot, your stomach fluttering as you pressed back into the pillows, running your hands down to your thighs and squeezing the flesh. âI want⊠moreâŠâ You sighed through your arousal, cunt clenching desperately around Tobyâs cold fingers, sucking them back inside every time he drew them out. The brunette laughed, pushing his feet under him to push his hips up against your ass, your hips raising off the bed as he fingered down into you. You could feel his cock straining behind his jeans below your raised ass, twitching needily with every tug of his fingers and moan that whined from your throat. His size was overwhelming, making your heart pound as Toby began to curl his fingers, making your eyes shut quickly.Â
His fingers pressed so deep in your cunt, curling against your sensitive walls and making your jaw hang, beginning to press against your walls at a steady rhythm. It was like a new fire had lit under Toby, fingers screwing in at a quicker pace and making your stomach clench, face screwing into an overwhelmed feeling. His fingers pumped in, knuckles sinking in through your wetness and gripped by your gummy walls, curling his fingertips just right as he got deep. It was so intense, so rough, just a mess of slick and your wet cunt sounding through the room with every squelch as he abused your clit, swiping left and right quickly. Your thighs twitched and ached with every curl, trying to close around his hand practically fucking you into sensitivity. Your hands wrapped around his forearm quickly, begging his wrists to stop curling abusively inside of you as you tugged your nails into his skin. Toby wouldnât, continuing to pump his fingers as he stared at your flushed face, cunt squelching embarrassingly loud. âJust a l- little more⊠Co- Come onâŠâ He groaned, nudging his hips against your bare ass as his fingers milked moans and whines out of you, his fingers glistening with your arousal every time he tugged them out. He couldnât feel you clawing at his arms, loud groans begging him to let up as your cunt clenched, molding around his thick fingers.Â
You could feel your orgasm rolling through you, Toby huffing as the veins in his arms popped, his shoulder muscles straining against his shirt as he watched your face carefully, picking up as your moans became louder. âGonna come f- for me? Yeah?â He teased, clothed cock twitching against your ass, pushing your cheeks apart as he rutted against you. He curled his fingers quicker, mumbling his arousal as he watched your cunt swell around him, clit throbbing under his thumb. Your orgasm hit you like a truck, stomach tightening and forcing you to sit up, Toby was quick to let off your clit and wrap his arm around your back, holding you up as he pumped your through your cunt squelching, tightening around his digits. Your eyes rolled, teeth grit tight as he palmed your clit, slowing his pace to a slow thrust as you became undone against him. No orgasm of your own had ever compared to that, head light and chest heavy as you breathed quickly, gripping Tobyâs shirt tight.Â
Refusing to let you go, Toby leaned in, pressing kisses against your neck and licking at your sweat, relishing in the warmth around his digits. You whined, cunt sensitive as he tugged his fingers out, his skin raw and pruned against the wetness coating his digits. Your folds were absolutely drenched, Toby spreading his fingers through your lips and pushing his sopping fingers over your warm thighs wrapped around him. âGod, y- youâre so wet-â He gasped, pressing his fingertips back against your clit as he laid you back, gripping your tit. Your mind panicked, cunt flashing with sensitivity as he began to rub against your clit, swiping left and right against the rub quickly. âToby- Stop- Toby, please-â You cried, breath catching in your throat as your stomach clenched, his fingers pressing hard as he pinched your nipples, eyes trained on your wet pussy. âYou e- ever squirt before?â He smiled, transitioning fast between digging his fingers into your cunt and pulling them back out to swipe against your clit. It was nauseating, cunt crying desperately for relief as he dug nails into your tits. Gasping loudly, you gripped his arms, knees screwing tight against his sides as you cried out, hips bucking up against his hands.Â
Every time his fingers slipped into your entrance, they squelched loudly, fluttering around the intrusion before desperately aching as they tugged out and moved onto your clit. âSquirt li- like a whore, m- mkay? Quit fightinâ.â He hissed, letting his hand off your tit and scooping under your left knee, pushing it back to open your cunt wider, spreading your legs further apart. Your head was dizzy, heart pounding as you gasped for air, panting at every push of his fingers. You were already quick to cumming, but it felt weird, not that normal clench you felt in your stomach, more of a strain against your cunt itself. You cried out, tears slipping down your cheeks as he forced your pussy against his will, ruining you.Â
As he swiped his fingertips down hard against your clit, your entrance clenched, mouth opening wide as you cried out, hips bucking up as you felt your cunt squirt, thighs trembling hard. There was literally nothing to compare it to, mind hazy as you sprayed onto his black shirt, his fingers digging into your entrance and pushing more juices out of your swollen folds. Toby was smiling, moaning his approval as he rubbed your clit softly, pushing the last of your orgasm out as you strained against the mattress. âGunna fu- fuck you dumb, babyâŠâ He growled, tugging the soaked shirt over his head and tossing it as he unzipped his jeans, tugging them down and off his legs as his cock hung heavy against your drenched cunt. You couldnât even react, head spinning as Toby gripped your hips, pushing you onto your side as he grabbed your ankle, pulling it onto his shoulder and straddling your other.Â
Neck craning with excitement, he teased the tip of his swollen cock between your folds, slicking himself up with your ruined juices. âThis is wh- what you wanted, is- isnât it?â He smiled wildly, pressing his cock into your ruined cunt, groaning loudly as you swallowed him in, warmth gripping tight as he gripped your leg, other hand stable on your tit. You groaned, face turned into the pillow as he began to thrust deep, giving you no mercy as he tugged at your nipple, biting at your calf as he fucked into you. You felt so full, your body so exhausted already as stretched you further, your entrance burning against the sting of this new girth. You squeezed him so tight, cock forcing itself deeper with every tug of his hips as you began to cry, tears staining your pillowcase.
âFuckinâ tal- alk to me, baby. Gunna mak- make me cum al- already.â He sighed, teeth chewing against the meat of your calf as he pressed your cunt wider, sweat dripping from his nose as his curls clung to his forehead. He let off your tit, left hand slinking up to grip your jaw and turn your face back to look at him, your eyes heavy as they blurred with tears. Toby looked so good right now, cheeks dark against his freckles as he towered above you, cock pushing against your gummy walls and making your mouth hang. âSo prettyâŠâ He smiled, slinking his hand down to your throat and squeezing, cock pulsing as your face tightened, mouth gasping out as he clamped tighter, refusing you air. There was something so orgasmic about cutting your airway, watching your body react as he fucked your virgin cunt, holding your life in his hands. He had to breathe deep to stop himself from cumming, his violent brain spasming out.Â
He pushed your ankle over his head, pulling out roughly as he rolled you onto your stomach, you gasping from the wave of air hitting your lungs. Pushing himself against your ass, Toby swore, pushing his cock back into your cunt as he pushed your back down, making you arch against him. âJust a l- little more, mâkay?â He growled, wrapping a hand around the back of your neck and squeezing hard, pressing your face down into the pillow. With a new pace, he fucked down into you wildly, hand kneading your ass hard as digging his nails into your skin, little welts forming across the soft flesh. Your muffled cries sounded against the pillow, head light and static filled as you gasped for air, Tobyâs cock ramming down against your g-spot. âNever s- seen a bitch so willing, so des- desperate for my dick youâd gi- give it up so easily.â He teased, growling as he let off your neck, neck sore as he leaned down, pushing your hair off your neck. Toby hadnât felt like this before, wanting to mark you, fucking you so desperately he wanted to carve his shape deep inside. He couldnât let you go without knowing exactly who you craved, corrupting you, ruining you, molding you to fit only him.Â
He licked against your shoulder, sucking onto the skin before he pressed his teeth, digging both hands into your hips as he sunk them in, groaning at the pop as your blood soaked his teeth. You were crying, screaming into the pillow as your entire body begged for him, craving him, mind going blank as your blood dripped from his chin as he licked at the wound. He pressed on, nibbling into the crook of your neck and sucking revolting hickies into your skin, marking you like an animal. âWan- Want you to come on m- my cock, baby. I got- gotta fill you full, want y- you ruined for everyone b- but me.â He mumbled quickly, cock begging to spill inside of your warm cunt as you reached around, gripping his hair as he sunk his teeth in again, walls fluttering around him. You pulled his hair, dragging his mouth off of your neck and to your lips, smashing your swollen, tear-stained lips against his as he groaned, kissing you roughly.Â
You were cumming again, back arching onto Tobyâs cock as you moaned into his mouth, walls holding him tight inside. He tried to move, to continue thrusting, but you were so tight all he could do was rutt his hips, begging for friction as his own seed spilt, his brows screwing tight as he came deep inside of you, warm cum seeping deep into your cunt. Your mind was blank, eyes rolled as you cried into his grasp, his nails digging into your hips until you were nearly bleeding. Your cunt squelched, milking his cock as he finally pulled from your lips, letting the last of your orgasms fizzle out before he pushed off of you, slowly tugging himself out as you whined. Looking back, his cock was soaked, glistening with your arousal and streaks of blood, Tobyâs eyes wide. âAh⊠Yo- You toreâŠâ He hissed, wiping his soft cock with his shirt before pulling his boxers on, quickly trotting out of your room. You dropped your head back onto the pillow, cunt aching and body ruined as you sat in your sweat and each otherâs cum, mind tired as you slowly blinked.Â
Toby was back in seconds, a water bottle, a wet rag, and a small bag all in tow as he climbed back onto the bed, flipping your lazy body onto your back. You smiled, sipping the water bottle slowly as he began to clean you up, gently running the warm rag between your folds and against your thighs until he was satisfied, gently rubbing your skin. Finally, he grabbed the bag, your confusion evident as he tugged out the prescription bag, rummaging for the plan b he made you buy and popping one of the pills out, handing it to you as he smiled. Your chest welled, previous anxiety dissipating until you began to tear up, taking the small pill before reaching to wrap your arms around his neck, tugging him down next to you. Toby went easily, body cradling against yours as he kissed against the bruised spots on your neck, rubbing your bite mark gently.
As you began to doze, Toby mumbled something about your note, your mind too dizzy to hear the rest. The last thing you saw was a subtle flash behind your eyelids, sleep overtaking you as Toby held you close.
-
Morning came quickly, your body stirring, reaching for Toby but finding the bed empty. Confused, you sat up, eyes heavy and head still pounding but you pressed off the bed anyway, searching for the boy. Downstairs, on the countertop, laid his hoodie neatly folded, with a small piece of paper resting on top. Sauntering over, you reached for the top, sliding it over your head, it falling before your hips as you gripped the paper, reading its contents.
On a mission. Be back later tonight. Meanwhile, enjoy ;)
Flipping the paper over, you gasped, slapping your hand over your mouth. A small picture was taped to the back, a polaroid-type photo of the two of you cradled together, your bare body pressed against his, bruises and sweat on full display. Smiling, you tucked it into his pocket, breathing the scent of his hoodie deep as Addy circled your ankles, begging for breakfast.Â
Staring out your back porch door, you made sure it was unlocked, always open for him. Killer or not, that boy was yours now, accepting his every mishap the same way he did yours. For the first time in a long time, you felt wanted.Â
Rest in Hell, Mr. Higgs.
This was an anonymous request!
Comments and reblogs are appreciated! đââč
#smut#creepypasta#ticci toby#creepypasta fandom#creepypasta smut#creepypasta x reader#creepypasta x you#creepypasta x y/n#creepypasta x female reader#ticci toby smut#ticci toby x reader#ticci toby x you#ticci toby x y/n#proxies#eyeless jack#jeff the killer#ben drowned#slenderman#slenderverse#jeff the killer x reader#eyeless jack x reader#ben drowned x reader#masky x reader#masky x hoodie#masky and hoody#jeff the killer x y/n#eyeless jack x you#slenderman x you#jeff the killer x eyeless jack#slenderman x reader
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
Guess whoâs thinking about this again!
Also I reached the tag limit so just know thereâs very gore ish stuff in there
Huh? Oh yeah yeah I'm fine I'm just thinking about the Sad Man's Parade appearing behind the Erasure group and throwing them into the concrete, constantly making more doubles and growing in mass, meaning that as they were falling on top of Eraserhead and Monoma, the ever-growing weight of doubles on top of them made them hit the ground even harder and definitely should've been enough to kill them but it didn't because the writers decide if they live or die and that's their only saving grace
#itâs just so insane to me#they should be DEAD. reasonably that should have KILLED them.#part of me really wishes we got to see their injuries. they donât look that badly injured in the anime but we can make them WORSE#You have no idea the things I am thinking#the twice clones wanted to stop them because they are heroes but also because they were getting in the way of shigaraki#okay Iâm about to talk gore so be careful#just just just the twice clones absolutely FUCKING TTHR#UP#monoma and manual getting brought down and Manuelâs got a bashed in forehead and a broken arm#nasty break it was absolutely on purpose. gotta break the heroes in any way they can right?#monoma has a severe depressed skull fracture#bloody sight and fukidashi and Kaminari are having to witness and deal with it#you know what? might fuck him up a bit more- crushed ribs#no mercy for these guys#they are actively bleeding out and dying and thereâs no proper medical treatment for them bc no one expected this AT ALL#thereâs no way to save them and the students just have to try their best to help the#them*#they are going to die. there is no denying that. these two are going to die in their arms and the best thing they can do is slow the process#fight back the tears and help as you feel their pulses slow. be a hero and extend their lives even if itâs ten measly minutes#you wanted to be a hero? now you know what itâs like. now you get to experience what itâs#like to fail as one and have someone die in front of you#you can try to help but the suffocating tie youâll be wearing to their funeral is distracting you#as you comfort their limp bodies with your arm you question what color flowers you should give them. anything but red should be fine. youâve#seen enough of that color#what will you say to their coffin lid? no one can stand to have it open because theyâre too disfigured to look at#say your last goodbye while they can still hear you because they will not live to see the stars at midnight#woah guys#went kinda crazy there sorry#tw gore description#gore description
44 notes
·
View notes
Text
take me home, country road
[ao3]
You have nothing on your person apart from a hastily packed suitcase and the dress you came into town wearing, on the run from trouble back home. Too bad John's missing a bride that matches your description. Or: the 1800s (mistaken) mail order bride au (chapter 16 + 17) tw: violence, injuries, and misogynistic language
first chapter >> last chapter
-
Sinking into fear is the bodyâs natural response. You let it envelope you without putting up a struggle. It wouldnât be one that youâd win anyway. Resistance already leaks out of you like tar, pooling around your quivering legs. Â
It makes you feel lighter than air, almost buoyant; and conversely, heavier than lead.Â
You canât feel the cold metal of the gun through the layers of fabric separating it from the skin of your back, but you can feel its weight. And you can imagine it burning into you, burning a ring into the flesh, the muzzle leaving faint depressions behind, circular indents.
âDonât feel so clever now, huh?â
Fear chokes as well as it binds. When the man you remember as Graves (appropriately named, you think, the gravity of the situation sinking into you as well) drawls the words into your ear, any moisture in your mouth dries.Â
âWell?â he prompts, shoving the gun harder into your back, almost sending you toppling into the shelf still in front of you obscuring you from sight. âGot anythinâ to say?â
You open your mouth but nothing comes out.
âYou a mute, girl? I know you ainât deaf since you heard Iâd been sniffinâ around lookinâ for ya. âLeast Iâm guessinâ you did, since you managed to give me the slip for the whole time I was in town.â He sniffs. âTook me a while to find out you were shacked up with the sheriff. Hiding in plain sight. Couldnât believe I missed ya when Sheriff Price was damn near the first person I met in this two-bit town.â
You finally muster up the nerve to speak. âY-youâre making a mistake.âÂ
The furled upper lip is audible in his voice. âIâd try not to piss me off too much, sugar. Lyinâ just rubs me the wrong way is all.â
âNo, youâyou really donâtââÂ
He shoves the gun harder into your back, making you wince. âNow, I know youâre a slippery little bitch, so Iâll level with you, alright?â Graves murmurs, pitching his voice low to ensure that only you hear. âYou make so much as a peepâso much as a fuckinâ whisperâand Iâll shoot. Wink and Iâll shoot. I am dyinâ for you to give me a reason to go with the better half of the dead or alive question.â
Thereâs no point in lying. It mightâve worked had it been anyone but the man holding you hostage; not a man as stubborn and mulish as him. You nod when he asks if you understand.
âNow get to steppinâ.â
He doesnât tarry long, leading you out of the shop with a hand on your shoulder and . You stare at Miles with mounting horror, wordlessly begging him to look up from the ledger open in front of him on the counter. Your prayers go unanswered though; he doesnât so much as glance towards the door before itâs swinging shut behind you.
âRemember,â Graves says in a low voice as the two of you step out onto the porch, ânot a word. I will shoot anyone that tries to interfere.âÂ
That kills the impulse to shout for help.Â
The thought of letting Graves take you away without voicing so much as a single plea fills you with horror, but you canât see any other way out. He walks you through the streets like an old friend, the pistol still wedged into your back obscured by his coat. No one seems to notice the wild look in your eyes or the strained edge of your smile.Â
Your behavior infuriates you. Demural and soft and wretched. Youâve only allowed one man to put you under their thumb; only one has ever earned the right.Â
The thought of your husband is an ache in your chest that doesnât abate. It thumps with the terrified flutter of your heart. You half wonder if heâll suddenly appear from around a bend and wrench you into his arms, gun already drawn and aimed at the man attempting to take you away from him.Â
âMy husbandââ you start, tripping over your words. Almost tripping over a rock as well since your spine is too stiff to let you look down at the ground while you walk. ââHe canâhe can pay you.â
He laughs, a nasty, mocking sound. âIâm sure heâd like to, sugar. Jus' ainât sure heâs got the cash to pay your price.â
âAt least let me askââ
At that, he jams the gun violently into the small of your back, making you wince agaun. Petrified. Sweat sluices off your brow and drips down your face. âWhat part of shut the fuck up donât you get?â
That silences you. Hard to muster up the nerve to retaliate with a gun lodged against the base of your spine. Still thereâs so much that bears asking. Why did he come back? Why hereâwhy now?Â
The town takes on a dull, listless quality as he steers you away from the more crowded areas. Itâs almost like looking through muslin; a veil between you and the world.Â
Your eyes dart from person to person as they pass by in the opposite direction, but even those that bother to meet your gaze only smile politely, a couple passing gentlemen chirping, âMorning, Mrs. Priceâ before sweeping by in a hurry.Â
None question the wild, frantic glint in your eye, the look of a horse about to bolt. If they paid you more than a momentâs notice, they might, but even the lady who frowns curiously at Graves, his hand still resting gently on your arm as if he were an old, dear friend, abandons her momentary curiosity when her companion says something of interest, pulling her back into their conversation. The flicker of hope in your belly dies a soundless death.Â
Thereâs something almost phantasmagorical about the entire ordeal. Almost like it isnât quite happening, like you canât quite make yourself believe that this is, in fact, real. Like youâre watching from outside of yourself. Though you can see the wooden facades of the nearby buildings and smell the scent of hay and manure from the livery stable, it doesnât resonate within you as real.Â
He meanders through town with you stationed in front of him. A meat shield. Collateral damage. Simply by the way he maneuvers you through the crowd, he reduces you to a body, stripping you of any semblance of personhood. Youâre less than meat to him, less than human evenâno more than a meal ticket.Â
When you muster up the courage to open your mouth the next time someone passes you by, Gravesâ hand slides up to your shoulder and he digs his fingers into the bone. A warning.Â
âIf you think I was kiddinâ before, just try me,â he sneers into your ear, thumb pressing into your shoulder blade until you wince.Â
Again, his voice dispels any thought of getting someoneâs attention.Â
He doesnât lead you towards the train station like you expect. Instead, he heads to an awning beneath the saloon on the periphery of town where a couple horses are leashed to a post, waiting for their riders to come untie them. The roof of the awning is strung with a dense cluster of overlapping cobwebs. A spider scuttles across the web and into the dark inner recesses of the canopy.Â
This far from the center of town, thereâs hardly anyone. When you give your surroundings a quick glance, you canât find a single other soul within earshot, only a single man pushing open the batwing doors on his way into the saloon. Then youâre alone again.Â
A tawny gelding chuffs when Graves approaches.  When he suddenly unhands you, it doesnât click until heâs several paces away from you, running his hand down his horseâs neck and rifling through the saddlebags, emptying the contents of his coat pockets into them. You have to glance down at your shoulder just to be sure. He sheathes his gun as well, tucking it into the holster fixed to his belt.Â
âBought the horse off a drunk three towns back,â Graves explains while loading up the horse.
You donât respond, still unsettled. Itâs the first time since he led you out of the general store that his gun hasnât been aimed at you. It wouldnât be practical for him to dress and load the horse one handed. The sun beats down on you, burning the top of your head. This could be your momentâa moment to scream or run away.
But you donât. You donât scream and you donât run because you are, above all else, a coward. Through and through. Youâve been running from your problems for months now, leaving someone else to take care of the mess you left behind.Â
Fear paralyzes you; it makes you think too much or not at all. Even now, with Graves giving you the perfect opportunity to turn and run, you canât stop thinking about the potential consequences. What if he were to shoot you? What if he were to haul you back into town and expose your sins to everyone who gathered around? What if the people in town that have come to see you as one of their own were to gather around your crumpled form and stare at you with vitriol and disgust?Â
âHow did youââ you start, then pause to breathe, the nausea building again. âI thought youâd left town.â
âYouâdâve liked that, huh?âÂ
You donât answer that. You know better than to antagonize a man with a gun.Â
He sighs when you donât rise to the bait, almost pettish. âWedding announcement. I saw it in the paperâby then, Iâd moved on to Lexington, so it took me awhile to backtrack, but I just knew somethinâ about that bit in the paper about the sheriffâs wife hailing from the east coast didnât sound right. Too big of a coincidence. Had to at least be sureâretrace my footsteps. Lotta money on the line, you know.â
You stare straight ahead at that. You ought to have known.Â
(âIn the paper. The county sheriff got hitchedâof course itâd be a story.â)
âTo be honest, that kinda cracked me up. Murderess marrying the county sheriff.â He snorts out a laugh, shaking his head. âSorta thing youâd read about in a dime novel.â
A new emotion wells up within you. It simmers in your belly, hot and cold at once. Righteous fury. All this time, youâve been betraying yourself with your silence, allowing men to read your fear as guilt. Complicit in your own ruin.Â
âIâm not a murderer.â
The look he gives you is withering. âSugar, I hate to break it to you, but you did kill a man.â
You open your mouth, but nothing comes out. Nothing ever does, it seems.  But the more you hold it in, the uglier the thought seems, until it erupts from your chest like Vesuvius, lava and tephra shooting out.Â
âHe deserved it,â you finally spit out, the words coming from deep in your chest.Â
Graves doesnât even pause in his ministrations, back to tightening the saddle straps.Â
âHe deserved it,â you repeat, spittle flying out of your mouth and landing in the dirt between the two of you.Â
âThatâs not somethinâ I usually concern myself with,â he finally says, looking distinctly unimpressed when he meets your stare. Bored blue eyes.Â
Youâre struck by the sense that your life means so little to him that the circumstances surrounding your bounty hardly merit more than a passing thought. If he could spare less, he would.Â
Itâs the vilest thing in the world to be regarded with such bored contempt.Â
âHe wouldâveâhe wouldâve raped me otherwise. I didnât have a choice.âÂ
At that, Graves pauses. When he looks towards you, his eyes are curiously blank.Â
âBetter that than whatâll happen now,â he says, the words so perfunctory that it takes a moment for them to sink in.  When they do, you have to swallow back bile.
His glibness shatters whatever hope youâd had left.Â
In that moment, you finally acknowledge that appealing to his sense of decency wonât lead you anywhere because it simply doesnât exist within him. Youâve known men like him beforeâthose more concerned with lining their own pockets than taking care of the vulnerable people around them. The archetype is not uncommon. You shouldâve expected it even, especially from a bounty hunter.Â
There wonât be any bribing him or talking your way out of the situation youâve found yourself in. Whatever facinorous end awaits you back east, heâs happy to shepherd you there so long as it earns him his thirty coins.Â
How many times do you have to ask yourself if youâre brave enough to do something before you answer?Â
When Graves turns to face you again and takes a step towards you, likely to urge you up onto the saddle, you recoil, stumbling away from him. His eyes sharpen at your movement, fulvous wolf eyes narrowing on you.Â
âAnd here I thought youâd stopped pissinâ me off,â he says lightly, a hard edge underlying his words. His hand lifts to rest against the handle of the revolver tucked back in its sheath, thumb flexing over it.Â
âWhatâs the point?â you retort, nostrils flaring. âYou either kill me here or I die there.â
You sound braver than you feel, fear making you shake so hard that your knees almost knock together.Â
Gravesâ smile is all lip, no crinkling around the eyes. âOh, I wonât kill you, sugar. Iâm a better shot than that.â
Your heart pounds against your ribcage, stomach turning over at the thought of him putting a bullet through your shoulder or leg.Â
âIâm surprised you wonât just come quietly. You think the sheriff wouldnât hand you over to me himself if he found out what kinda woman he married?â
Thatâs been your fear from the very beginning. The one thing thatâs kept you awake at night, the nightmare shaking you out of a dead sleep. Youâd convinced yourself that him calling the authorities or even escorting you back east himself was an inevitability. That John Price, paragon of virtue, wouldnât bend the rules for anyone, much less you.Â
But the more you think about it, the less sense it seems to make. Every tender word and touch rises to the forefront of your memory. If John has shown you anything, itâs love. Heâs proven his devotion a thousand times over, shown you time and again that were you to leave, heâd come running.Â
Suddenly, the thought that your husband would let someone take you away from him seems preposterous. It doesnât align at all with the man you know. Heâd go to hell and back for you, would rip out a manâs tongue for speaking to you the way Graves speaks to you now. Hindsight makes that clear.Â
You meet his eyes, intention set. âIâd rather just ask him.â
Blue eyes turn to flint, flat. Droll candor shed for ruthlessness. Silence before a storm.Â
Heâs on you before you even have a chance to whirl around and make a run for it, arm cutting into your windpipe when he wraps it around your neck. He drags you back into the shadows of the awning, out of sight from anyone on the street; your heels score lines in the dirt. You choke, wheezing on your next breath, but his arm tightens, trapping the scream in your throat.Â
âShoulda done this before,â Graves grunts, reaching into his back pocket and pulling out the pair of cuffs he had tucked away.Â
When he unhooks his arm from around your neck, you gasp for breath, sucking in deep lungfuls of air. Panic swirls and rises in your chest.Â
âGet your hands offââ you hiss, beating his arm with your fist to no avail. He yanks your arms in front of you until your wrists are pressed close together. Your blood curdles at the feeling of cold iron against your skin and the gut-wrenching sound of handcuffs being fixed around your wrists, tightened to the point of pain. You can hardly flex your hands with how tight theyâre bound. âLet me go, let ME GOââ
He pulls you in close again. âDonât think I wonât tape your fuckinâ mouth shut too,â Graves snarls in your ear. Nausea swells in your belly.Â
âPleaseâ please donât do thisââ you beg, a sob breaking from your chest now.Â
He sighs, long suffering. âLord knows I tried to warn you.â
Despite the threat, Graves doesnât tape your mouth shut. Instead, he fastens a rough piece of rope around your head, fitting it between your teeth like a bit. You donât have it in you to be thankful for small mercies this time. The hemp cord scratches the corners of your mouth when you try to move your lips around it.Â
âThere,â he says, giving you a rough shake, satisfied. âThatâs better. Can finally hear myself think.â
The tears leak out of the corners of your eyes in big, fat droplets, clouding your vision. When he wipes your cheeks with a calloused hand, the nail of his thumb catches on the delicate skin under your eye, leaving a thin cut. The pain makes you flinch, staring daggers at the man in front of you, but he doesnât apologize for his rough handling.Â
Graves heaves himself up onto the saddle first, swinging a leg over with practiced ease. You yelp when he hauls you up after, setting you on the saddle in front of him. Heat crawls up your neck when your skirt billows around your waist, horrified.Â
âSave your tears, sugar,â he tells you, gathering the reins in one hand. âYouâll need âem for later.â
The horse whinnies when Graves pulls upward and guides him towards the road leading out of town, hooves clopping against the dirt. Your heart shoots up into your throat.Â
Galloping out of town, you chance a glance back, head spinning as the world blurs around you. A man stands under the awning you just left, his head cocked as if stupefied. Heâs too far away for you to get a proper look at his face though, no way to tell if heâs someone that might recognize you and alert John. You try to scream or wave your handsâanything to get his attention, to let the stranger know that something is wrong.Â
You watch until the figure melds into the surrounding town.Â
You keep waiting for someone to appear from behind you. A tall figure to darken the horizon, blot it like the moon passing over the sun.Â
The last bastion of your hope collapses into rubble the farther away you ride, no man nor horse following you in pursuit. And then a hand grabs a fistful of your hair and wrenches your head back around, cutting off your view.
The plan is to leave the horse in the next town you reach and take a train back east. Graves wouldâve done that back in the town you just left, he tells you, but he wanted to put as much distance between you and the sheriff.Â
âYou never know with men whoâve gotten a taste of married life,â he says when he finally deigns to stop miles from town, sitting on a rock and having a drink while he leaves you tied to the horse by your wrists. You shift from foot to foot, a cramp winding up your legs. âThey get themselves a little pussy and lose all sense of dignity or morality. Canât be trusted to do the right thing.âÂ
Steam practically billows out of your ears. You have the good sense to keep your mouth shut though, cognizant of the fact that youâre alone out in the middle of nowhere with a man whoâd be happy to bring you back dead or alive. Though he hasnât been quite so explicit, itâs apparent in the way he doesnât offer to untie you or let you rest as well. The skin under the cuffs on your wrists are rubbed raw from your attempts to free yourself, and from the journey itself, with all the jostling and the persistent cramp in your right shoulder.Â
The animal awareness dawns on you during that first rest. Heâd taken the rope out when you were far enough outside of town that it didnât matter if you screamed or not. Thatâs what stays your tongue nowâthe creeping notion that you are far from anyone that would be remotely sympathetic to your plight.Â
âHow much was the bounty?â you ask, more out of morbid curiosity than anything. You balance on one foot to shake the cramp out of the other.Â
âNow, I hate to be rude, sugar, but what does it matter to you? It ainât you collecting the reward.â
Your lips flatten into a taut line, already regretting prying. Itâs not like knowing would change anything.Â
The break ends sooner than youâd hoped, Graves urging you back onto the horse before taking a seat behind you. It troubles you because youâre not far enough away from town that you couldnât still be rescued. Thereâd be more of a chance of John or someone elseâone of his deputies, perhapsâcoming across you out here. But you donât have much of a choice.Â
Out here, the land stretches on without end. Only the faint blue of a mountain ridge paralleling your route breaks the horizon. The land is flat, sparse apart from the dense shrubbery and trees twisted and bent by the wind. Cottonwood and boxelder. Chokecherry. Dogwood and hawthorn. Lush blooming saltbrush.Â
The clear blue sky overhead is almost mocking, the rain from earlier long since abated. Thereâs hardly a cloud in the sky now. Itâd be scenic if you could abstract it from the circumstances. A perfect day for gardening or a brisk walk after being kept indoors because of the rain. Youâre still damp from riding through the rain earlier.Â
A few bison congregate in a small dip in the terrain, grazing on the wild grass. You stare at them wide-eyed as you gallop along the upper ridge, startled by the sight of so many in one place.Â
Despite the sublime beauty of the land, you remain on edge, unable to take anything in or truly enjoy it. Panic and revulsion leave you as gnarled and knotted as the krummholz trees out in the middle of the open plains. Riding with Graves feels nothing like the few times you and John shared a horse. Itâs impersonal; transactional. Entirely against your will.Â
The sun has only just begun to descend under the horizon when you and Graves approach a ramshackle house situated by itself in the middle of the open plains. Barely more than a barn, and long since abandoned by the looks of it. Age has done the place no favors; wooden slats sag and separate from the exterior of the house, the gaps in between the boards letting in all manner of insects and rot.Â
Graves dismounts his horse about a stoneâs throw from the hovel. His brow furrows with dissatisfaction as he surveys the abandoned property.Â
âShit,â he remarks, sucking his teeth. âA local back in town swore a family still lived here. Donât look like anyoneâs lived here since Abraham.â
Part of you wishes the former tenants still resided here, on the off possibility that one might take pity on you, but a much larger part of you is grateful for the dwellingâs vacancy. Youâve heard stories before, of families living out in the middle of nowhere. Rumors. Not all bad, of course; itâs common enough for families migrating west sometimes to stop along the way for a generation or two, building more permanent dwellings than the caravans they began their journey in. Many such families were also known for putting up travelers passing through in exchange for goods or help with chores.Â
But youâve also heard other stories. Like the Riley family out near Cherryvale and their homestead just off the Great Osage Trail. They lived out there for more than two decades before the number of lone travelers vanishing off the trail within walking distance of their property pointed the finger of suspicion at them. When the authorities finally got around to procuring a warrant for their property, they found the house deserted apart from the furniture that couldnât be loaded into the wagon and an infant boy, dehydrated and petrified.Â
You shake the story from your head. ââŠAre we spending the night here?â you ask tentatively.Â
He looks at you from the corner of his eye, nostrils flared. âDonât go gettinâ any ideas in that head of yours. Jusâ because a manâs gotta rest his eyes, donât mean I gotta give you a peaceful nightâs rest. No, Iâm leavinâ those hands of yours tied.â
Your hopes deflate at that.Â
He helps you dismount before hobbling his horse with a pair of leather straps around its front legs to keep it from darting off in the middle of the night. You wince sympathetically; you have more in common with a horse now than any man.Â
The inside of the cabin is just as derelict as the exterior. At the very least, he feeds you. A couple scoops of pemmican straight from the tin. The fact that he insists on feeding you instead of letting you feed yourself puts you on edge. Your spine is stiff as a board through it all, your mouth barely opening up to receive the spoonful of pemmican, the metal clanking against your teeth. You wince, the sound itself tasting of rust.Â
At all times, you are aware of the precarity of your situation. You canât imagine there were any stipulations in the bounty to bring you back unscathed. Though he hasnât tried anything untoward so farânot so much as made a licentious remarkâyou donât know how long your luck will last. You flinch every time he so much as twitches in your direction, sure at any moment his mood will flip and heâll drag you across the floor and haul himself over you.Â
Itâs enough to make your stomach hurt, turning over itself. He doesnât try anything though, and for that you exhale shakily, the tension running off you in rivulets.Â
One hour drags into the next. Night blackens the sky, seeping in through the crumbling walls of the cabin.Â
âWell,â Graves says, wiping his hands together to dust off any lingering crumbs. âIâm gonna hit the hay.â
âDoâŠdo I get to sleep as well?â
He cocks a brow. âNot much I can do to stop you.â
âItâs just thatâŠâ You lift your hands as you trail off, silently pointing out the handcuffs still secured around your wrists, the implicit assertion being that you wonât be able to sleep with the metal digging into the bones of your wrists.Â
Graves scoffs. âYou canât think Iâll just uncuff you âcause we ainât in town no more. I got a little more sense than that, sugar.â
âYou could use rope instead?â you suggest.Â
The seconds he spends considering it are long. You hold your breath as you watch him weigh the pros and cons.Â
Finally, he shrugs. âAlright.â
The relief that washes over you is almost palpable.Â
He pulls a blanket out of one of the saddlebags to function as a makeshift pillow, setting it up on the floor in the center of the room. True to his word, Graves uncuffs you and loops a double knotted rope around your wrists instead, fastening the rope tying your hands together around his own wrist. Your stomach sinks as he pulls the knot taut.Â
He levels a heavy stare on you after giving the rope one last tug. âI donât usually repeat myself, sugar, but I will this one time. Donât go tryinâ anythinâ stupid. Iâm gettinâ a good nightâs rest and so help me if you wake me upââ his eyes flash, gray going steely ââyou wonât like the consequences.â
You nod. Swallow back the phlegm clogging your throat.Â
True night plunges the old house into darkness, cricket songs slipping in through the cracks in the walls. The temperature also plunges with the setting sun. It gets cold at night, even in the summer months; the draft makes you shiver, the rotting exterior letting in the elements.Â
You keep to the wall with the least amount of rotting boards, as far as the rope tethering you to Graves will allow you to go. It would probably be in your best interest to try and get some sleep, but youâre far too restless to calm down. The atmosphere in the house is far too eerie to settle your nerves either; you canât help but wonder about the family that must have left this place to rot and fade away into memory.Â
Itâs all you can do to blink back the tears that spring to your eyes when you think about the memory of you that John will have to carry into the future now that youâre gone. It isnât fair. After everything youâve had to endure in this lifetime, you thought maybe that this might have been your reward. That John was your reward.Â
Your hands drop from your chin to your knees, hopelessness plaguing you again. The thin, sharp whistle of defeat. High and reedy as a death rattle.Â
Then your eyes drop to your wrists.
The cord is fastened in a bowline knot around your wrists, difficult to undo without considerable effort, but the material is softer than the cuffs Graves had you in before, and it gives when you pull one hand down while pushing the other up. Your skin bunches around the cord, but it doesnât cut into you the way the metal did.Â
Graves is still fast asleep when you glance over at him. He doesnât snore, but the rise and fall of his chest under the blanket is steady. Stable.Â
The fatigue dissipates from your body the second you put it together. That thereâs a sliver of a possibility of slipping your hands out of the rope tying you to Graves. The exhilaration is almost overwhelming. You have to sit with it a beat before acting, wary of letting your guard down too fast.
Time passes slowly as you fiddle with the knot, reaching your fingers as far as theyâll go and gritting your teeth through the ensuing cramp in your wrist. You nearly groan in frustration when your hand twitches and you accidentally retighten the knot. A near crushing blow.Â
Please, you mouth more than whisper, frustrated tears clumped in your lashes. Teeth sinking into the flesh of your bottom lip, pinching off the wail rising up your throat.Â
Your heart skips a beat when the rope loosens around one of your wrists, enough for you to wiggle a pinkie underneath and slowly shimmy it up the length of your hand. A cramp makes your pinkie spasm, almost causing you to lose your grip. Sweat pools in the cup of your palm.Â
When your wrists are finally free, the rope clutched in trembling hands and the basal joint of your thumb scrapped raw from the fibrous rope, you can only sit there, heart beating wildly in your chest. You have to force yourself to remain calm, wary of waking Graves up after all that effort. His eyelids quiver only with his dreams though.Â
You glance towards the door on the other side of the cabin. It seems either farther away now that you know itâs within reach. You know better than to just run straight for it though. Weeks of being on the run before finding John have taught you to pace yourself, to push down the fluttering evocation in your chest to make a mad dash for the closest way out.Â
Instead, you take a deep breath out, closing your eyes until youâve calmed down. Then you rise slowly to your feet.Â
Your eyes, having long since adjusted to the darkness, scan the room for any loose floorboards. Aside from one obvious corner of the house which has begun to rot away and collapse, itâs hard for you to discern at a glance which boards will groan under the weight of your feet. You have no choice but to guess.
Each step has you on edge, heart in your throat. Your focus shifts quicksilver between the floor and Graves. Waiting for any sudden movement.Â
Halfway to the door, you take another cautious step forward and the floorboard creaks under your foot. Your heart stops, eyes flitting instantly over to Gravesâ sleeping form. He doesnât so much as shift. Itâs another beat before youâre able to move again, confidence shaken by the noise. You keep imagining him suddenly shooting up from the floor, pistol in hand, the hammer striking the primer, the hiss of gas escaping the barrel.Â
The door gives a faint creak when you push it open, so you open it only enough for your body to slip through, wincing when you twitch and accidentally push it open another inch, dragging out the creak. Still, he doesn't wake. You slip past the door, shutting it quietly behind you. Â
The moon glows cornsilk gold in the sky. A vast, uncharted land stretches out around you, untouched by human hands, or so changed over the years that any human presence has long since been buried beneath the loam. But when you stare out into the distance, you realize that you have no idea where you came from. Everything looks the same in each direction, no landmark familiar enough for you to orient yourself. Youâre out in the middle of nowhere and nothing looks right.Â
If you had less strength, youâd fall to your knees. The despair is so immense that you hardly have the strength to hold it all at once.Â
The silence lulls you into a false sense of security. You linger for too long, stuck contemplating your options. Coyotes yip in distant packs, their barks carrying across the plains. You shiver at the sound. It reminds you again that youâre on your own now. No husband to come chasing after you if things get sticky.Â
Your first few steps away from the cabin are tentative, gliding your legs through the grass and staring up at the cornsilk moon. A combination of indulgence and bewilderment. If you knew the right way home, you wouldnât waver, but these days, you have no faith in your instincts. Theyâve only ever led you off course.Â
The gelding that Graves rode in on sits in the grass with its hind legs folded underneath it. With its legs still hobbled, you know removing the leather will take more time than you'd like, but you figure it'll be easier to make your way across the plains on horseback, with the added bonus of leaving Graves stranded. If God were just, heâd starve out here and leave his corpse for the coyotes to feast on.Â
You approach the horse cautiously, conscious not to make any sudden movements. Its ears angle towards you as you draw near. Attentive to your presence.Â
âHey there, honey,â you whisper, reaching out a hand and trying to show that you arenât a threat. Its nose twitches.
Another step forward. Easy does it. One leg in front of the other.
âI wonât hurt you. I promise.â You try to mirror your memory of John in your voice, honeysuckle soft words.Â
You arenât John though. Not even close. You take another step towards it.
It brays when you get too close, skittish. The sound pierces through the night, louder than the coyotes in the distance. Louder even than the creaking door. Â
The hair on the back of your neck raises, lips numb. Then the prickling awareness of movement in the house, like an itch on a phantom limb.Â
Behind you, the door to the cabin bursts open with a bang, slamming off the wall and ricocheting back. You whip your head around to look only to find Gravesâ towering form under the shadow of the doorway, his hair mused and clothes askew. And he looks enraged.Â
âHey!â Graves bellows from the doorway, breaking into a run towards you. âGet back here!â
Thereâs no time to sit with the regret, no time to bemoan the fact that you didnât exercise enough caution, that for some reason without a gun leveled at your head, you allowed yourself to forget the very real danger this man posed to you.Â
All you can do is run.
The grass whistles around you. You run so hard that your lungs burn, your arms pumping furiously beside you, dress swishing between your legs. You donât have to look behind you to know that Graves is gaining on you. His body is built for pursuit. Still, you push yourself past your breaking point, not stopping even when you taste blood in your mouth. Mindless; directionless. No idea where youâre goingâjust away from him. Youâd jump off a cliff if you came across one.Â
Heâs close enough for you to hear now, heavy breathing right behind you. But by then itâs too late. A heavy body rams into you, sending you careening towards the earth, the ground rushing up to meet you halfway. The dirt hardly cushions the blow.Â
You hit the ground hard. Head knocked loose of thought, agony ripping across your face. The double blow of a body heavier than yours forcing you into the dirt, so solid that it crushes the breath from your lungs.Â
Blood leaks from your lip, most likely split. When you breathe in to fill your lungs, you taste dirt and rust and earth.Â
âInsufferable bitch,â Graves snarls, putrid breath wafting under your nose and making your eyes water. He grabs a handful of your hair and wrenches your head up before slamming it back down. Something crunches. Distantly, you wonder if your nose is broken.Â
Your ears ring, the rest of his words drowned out by the blood rushing to your face.Â
âPleaseââ you beg, blood dripping from your split lip.Â
âKnew I shouldnâta trusted youâconniving little cuntâcâmere now, get upââ
He rises to his feet over your body, big hand curling around your wrist. You hear your shoulder pop when he yanks your arm behind your back. A rush of cold. A sweat breaks on the nape of your neck. Shock sets in the moment after, adrenaline flooding your body.Â
Then a sharp, focused surge of pain. It radiates from your shoulder outward, so intense that you canât believe it at first. Your whole world reduces down to it. Feathering out down your back; irradiating waves of it. Thoughts scattering and then coming back together around the pain. If you scream, it comes out unbidden.Â
âAh, hell, I didnât mean to do that,â he grumbles from behind you, likely staring at the unnatural jut of your shoulder. âAlright, sugar, one secondâIâll pop that back in.â
âNonononoââ you gasp, panic lancing through you, but he pays no attention to your words.Â
The pain of popping your shoulder back in is excruciating. Relief follows shortly after, but the time between dislocating and relocating your shoulder is so short that it hardly comes as a balm to the pain.
âYouâŠbastardâŠâ you gasp.Â
âWouldnâta had to do that if you hadnât run,â he sighs, the sight of your pain subduing his rage.Â
It doesnât stop him from grabbing you roughly by the arm he just dislocated when he finally gets you on your feet though, steering you back towards the house. The pain that radiates up your arm is almost blinding.Â
He drags you back to the cabin with a punishing grip. Thereâs no sympathy when you stumble. Moonlight illuminates the path back to the cabin and shows you the trenches in the wild grass made by your feet. Hardly more than a couple rods.Â
The defeat that courses through you upon being dragged through the ramshackle front door is ten times that of earlier. When he lets go of your arm, you collapse in a heap on the floor, aching and sweating. A bag of bones and blood. Youâd rattle if someone shook you.Â
âI hate you,â you mumble from your spot on the floor, shaking through the pain. âRot in hell.â
Graves doesnât respond, but you can almost hear the way he grins. Â
No rest for the wicked or the good this time. Graves wakes intermittently throughout the night to check up on you, wary now that youâve tried to run. Your regret is palpable. You shouldâve waited. Bided your time. There won't be another chance now, not after you played your hand so soon.Â
The ache in your shoulder keeps you from finding sleep. Every time you get close to it, the pain radiates down your arm and it slips from your grasp, your hand closing around the empty space it leaves behind. Teeth grit, breathing through the pain. Loosening your jaw and panting because the pain overwhelms you when you so much as shift onto your side, the hard floor digging into your elbow.Â
Right on the edge of sleep, just as you're about to latch on, a boot catches you in the ribs, jostling you back into the realm of pain. You wheeze, breaking into a coughing fit.Â
âGet up,â a hoarse voice grunts above you, empty of sympathy. âWe got places to be.â
He has the two of you back on the horse as soon as dawn breaks. Your escape attempt the night before must have spooked him, and you regret it now in the light of day because you know he wonât let you out of his sight again. The metal handcuffs digging into your wrists assures you of that.Â
Thereâs no time for breakfast or time to wash up. Graves makes it a point to be back on the road as fast as possible, repacking his bedroll and stuffing it back in the saddlebag before dragging you up with him.Â
The pain is a dull throb after sleeping most of the agony away. It comes back when you move too quickly though, which is hard to avoid on horseback when each gallop echoes through your sore bones and joints.Â
The arching sun immixes with the heavens above, rising higher as the hours pass. You ache for a hat; something to keep the heat of the sun off your head. On the horizon, the mountain ridge sits like a spine bursting out from the earth. Itâs all wastelands and portents. Evil omens.Â
Your heart feels swollen and bruised, like something trampled under elk hooves.Â
âCheer up,â Graves says, tipping your chin up when the sun reaches its peak around midday, the gesture making you so uncomfortable that you almost shudder out of your skin. Your face still throbs with pain. âYou should be glad I didnât jusâ shoot you.â
Your lips pull back, baring your teeth to nothing.Â
A shot rips through the air at that, his words commanding it into being. Your head instinctively ducks and even the horse under you staggers, spooked by the sound. Graves curses, tensing up behind you.
"What in the hellâ"
You whip your head around to stare behind you, looking for the source of the gunfire. When you find it, your eyes widen.
#this is a long one because it's 2 chapters that i didn't feel like posting separately#but they're separated on ao3 if you wanna go read there#ceil writing#cod x reader#price x reader#john price/reader#john price x reader#price x you#john price x you
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
Dead of Night - Spencer Reid
Likes are always appreciated but reblogs and feedback keep artists going!
Summary: Spencer stumbles upon a secret dark fantasy of readerâs and does everything he can to be the one to fulfill it.
Word Count: 3.1k
A/N: This is the first time Iâve ever written anything with themes like this so feedback is definitely appreciated. Not proofread cuz this is long and Iâm tired ÂŻ\_(ă)_/ÂŻ I fully understand if the themes included in this are not for some of my regular readers and I encourage you to scroll if youâre not comfortable with any of the following warnings.
TW: perv!spencer, dom!spencer, mask kink, knife play, blood, dubcon, kind of cnc but itâs emphasized repeatedly that reader initiates and is in control of what is taking place, unprotected sex, penetration, creampie, degradation (slut), pet names (doll, angel) religious imagery, gun mention, std testing mention, fem + afab reader, soulmate talk
Rating: R, 18+
ââ
You knew it was wrong, youâd seen just how easily Penelope was able to track someone down through their âanonymousâ profile on websites just like this one, but your desires got the better of you, and you just had to try.
Your profile was nondescript, your age, a vague physical description of yourself, and a link to a meticulously detailed account of your wildest fantasies. After weeks of back and forth, chatting with a few equally nondescript profiles, you found the one that you really clicked with, the stranger you decided youâd let sneak into your window and do whatever he wanted with you. After an std panel and the agreement of your safe word, you decided to fully commit, sending this complete stranger your address and logging off for the night.
Even though you knew this was a stupid idea, you werenât a complete idiot, you had plans in case anything went south, including placing your handgun in your bedside table for easy access if you, god-forbid, had to use it. Placing yourself in a high-risk situation was the whole point, and you couldnât wait to see how it turned out.
You spent the remainder of your afternoon preparing, doing every grooming ritual youâd usually do before a date, but this time felt somehow more important. You didnât even know what this guy looked like, and yet, you wanted to be the picture of beauty for him. It was silly, but you always pictured yourself the prettiest youâd ever been when you daydreamed about being ravaged by a stranger. You wanted to be completely irresistible in every way, and you were doing everything in your power to accomplish that.
As the sun finally set, your excitement levels began to rise, anxiously awaiting the arrival of your masked suitor. You opened the bedroom window just above your fire escape, the cool night air drawing goosebumps over your exposed skin, only a thin lace slip and matching panties adorning your frame. You crawled into bed, double checking your bedside drawer before pulling your comforter over your body, eagerly drifting off to sleep.
â
Spencer had been keeping a secret, one that he did not want you to know about, until today. A few weeks ago heâd stayed late to finish up some paperwork for the last case youâd been on, when his pen ran out of ink just as he was about to sign off the last document. He walked to your empty desk, reaching across it to grab a pen from the cup next to your monitor, when his arm brushed against your mouse, causing your display to light up.
He knew he shouldnât snoop, but curiosity got the best of him, scanning through the title of each tab open on your browser until a certain website caught his eye. He went against his better judgment and clicked the tab, his jaw dropping upon viewing your profile, and with it, the graphic description of your sexual proclivities. His brain immediately cemented that information in his mindâs eye, fit to torture him for days after the encounter.
He couldnât stop picturing himself fulfilling all of those desires for you, having to excuse himself to the bathroom several times a day to take care of the bulge in his pants just from being around you. He eventually bit the bullet, creating his own profile on the website and messaging you as an âanonymousâ suitor, beyond pleased when the two of you hit it off. He felt bad not telling you, but this was a means to an end that would surely leave you both satisfied, and the devious part of him won out this time.
He did everything you asked, getting tested so he could fuck you raw, he was apprehensive about the risks of a potential pregnancy even without the fear of std transmission, but the way you begged so beautifully in your messages for him to creampie you was more than enough to convince him. The moment he got your message with your address, he went out and purchased a mask to conceal his identity just like you asked, and anxiously waited for nightfall.
â
The graze of fabric against your skin gently woke you as your bedding was pulled down off of your body, your mind clouded from the deep sleep youâd been sunk in seconds before. You rolled onto your back, starting to lift your head until a large hand clamped over your mouth, forcing your head back down onto your pillow. Your eyes widened, darting around the room before settling on the masked figure on top of you. You tried to scream against his palm, but the sound simply reverberated back against you, muffled by his strong grip.
His free hand made quick work of cutting off your slip, the thin fabric splitting easily against the blade of the knife in his grasp. You struggled underneath him, weakly pushing at his strong shoulders, feigning defense as the heartbeat in your cunt grew stronger by the second. You couldnât believe this was actually happening, the adrenaline coursing through your veins making you feel almost high.
âDonât fight it.â He hushed, holding the knife flush against your neck. You slowed your movements, settling for shifting your legs against his. He removed his hand from your mouth, freeing it up to gather your hands to pin them above your head as well as give you an opportunity to use your safe-word if need be.
He trailed the knife down your body, your chest heaving with shaky breaths as the blade scratched a small cut between your breasts, warm droplets of blood forming in itâs wake. He followed the curve of your body, leaving shallow kitten scratches until he reached your hip, using the tip of the knife to carve a heart into your skin. The sting of each movement set every nerve ending in your body on fire, the wetness pooling between your thighs increasing by the second.
He pressed his thumb to the wound, smearing the blood down to the waistband of your panties, using the digit to pull the fabric before letting it snap back against your skin. You gasped, your labored breaths growing more desperate as he brought the blade to slice the fabric, exposing your embarrassingly wet cunt.
âLook at how wet you are, you love this, donât you?â The condescension in his tone felt almost half-hearted, and the more of his voice you heard, the more familiar he started to sound, but you couldnât quite place why. You looked down at him, watching his every move as you tried to place him.
He set the knife on the bed, using his now free hand to yank his pants down, his hard cock slapping against his thigh. Your eyes went wide at his size, looking just long and thick enough to have you a little worried about being able to take him raw, but the thought of being stretched to your limits sent another wave of arousal straight to your core and helped quell that fear ever so slightly.
âIf you donât want this, just say the word.â His words dripped from his lips like honey, sickly sweet, and in that moment you had never felt more sure of your desire for anything in your life.
â
Spencer wondered if the way he was feeling was akin to that of religious psychosis, so engulfed in your very being that he ought to worship at your altar for the rest of his life, fit to carry out any act you requested of him.
His brain kept your description of your fantasy scrolling in the back of his mind, catering to everything you had written to a T in hopes of making this a night youâd never forget. The only thing at the forefront of his thoughts, however, was the intoxicating sounds you made every time he gripped or marked your skin. Each note sought to pull his focus, threatening his plan as it tempted him to lose control all together. He couldnât do that, his conscience too righteous in its goal to keep you as pleased as possible.
He took his time, marking you just the way youâd requested, his cock twitching with every whimper that flowed out of you until he finally reached your core, the lace of your underwear glistening under the moonlight cast through your open window from how wet you were. He wanted to sink fully into you without a care in the world, but he had to make sure this was absolutely what you wanted. He was, to your knowledge, a stranger after all, and the last thing he wanted was for you to be uncomfortable in any way.
â
You frantically shook your head in acknowledgment, spreading your legs wider for him, ready for this tall stranger to finally be inside of you. Your eagerness spurred him on, a surge of confidence washing over him as he let go of your wrists, his large hands gripping your hips and pulling you further down the bed. He lifted your legs so your knees rested atop his shoulders, his rough movements making you gasp.
He brought his cock to your core, running the shaft through your slick folds before slapping the head against your clit a few times, the repeated hits making your hips jolt ever so slightly. He hummed low in the back of his throat, lining up his tip with your entrance before thrusting forward, bottoming out inside of you in one fell swoop.
âYouâre so tight.â He grunted, one hand holding an iron grip on your thigh to hold your leg up, the other digging fingerprints into your hip. You gasped once more at the intrusion, feeling more full than ever before as he set a steady but unrelenting pace. Your gasp turned to crying moans, brows furrowed in awe at the way his cock stretched you so deliciously, prominent veins rubbing against the contours of your sensitive walls.
Each snap of his hips had his balls slapping against your ass, the lude sound mixing with his grunts and the wet squelching where your bodies met in the most intimate way, the decibel level in the room reaching an all-time high.
You bit your lip, trying to quiet yourself to at least somewhat lower the noise and not disturb your sleeping neighbors, but the absence of your desperate moans was not lost on him. His pace slowed, his left hand firmly gripping your chin to force you to look at his masked face. His eyes met yours through the thin slit in the dark fabric.
You knew those eyes, those big, soft brown irises, so comforting, yet darker than you recognized, pupils far more blown than youâd ever seen before. You knew him, but there was no way. Your mind must have been playing tricks on you, because there was no way that Spencer Reid would do anything this perverse, let alone with you.
âLouder, slut.â He squeezed your cheeks, forcing your lower lip out from under your bite.
âI-Iâm not a slut.â You mumbled, barely above a whisper.
âOnly a slut would leave her bedroom window open, practically begging a stranger to come in and fuck her.â This was far too brazen to be Spencer, you thought, a level of blunt confidence youâd never in a million years expect from him.
âI-I didnât mean to.â You stuttered over your words, raising your voice in an attempt to half heartedly defend your actions.
âWell then, you should really be more careful next time.â He laughed, releasing his grip on your face before playfully slapping your cheek and increasing the pace of his thrusts, his now free hand finding your clit. His calloused thumb drew broad strokes over and over and over against your sensitive bundle of nerves, a knot tightening in your stomach as you drew closer and closer to your release. You turned your head, trying to bury your face in the pillow as you writhed underneath him, your body frantically looking for relief.
âOh donât be shy doll, let me see how much youâre enjoying this.â His tone was almost sing-song, clearly enjoying this just as much as you were. He pressed his body down closer to yours, almost pinning your thighs against your stomach, the change in angle forcing a borderline scream from your lungs, crying out strangled âuhâs with every stroke. You looked him in the eye, desperate to know if this deity above you could possibly be your nerdy coworker, and every interaction youâd had with him flashed before your eyes.
Every fleeting glance he took at your chest or your ass, the way he lingered behind you in the field, feeling his presence even when you couldnât see him. You couldnât think of a time he wasnât around a corner when you turned it, always near whenever you needed his help on a case. You always secretly hoped he'd make a move sooner or later, but you never thought it would be anything like this.
He was omnipotent, knowing exactly how to make you feel things youâd never felt before, pushing your body to levels of pleasure you never thought possible. You thought you might disappear, your brain short-circuiting as you tried to make sense of everything, finally understanding why the French refer to orgasms as the little death.
Your walls fluttered around him, the sounds leaving you reduced to pathetic whimpers as your vocal chords grew strained.
âThatâs it, cum on my cock, angel.â He groaned, his thrusts growing increasingly desperate. The pet name surprised you, but if he saw you as an angel, how fitting considering how godlike he felt to you in that moment. You could tell he was close, and if your orgasm was what would get him to cum inside you, then so be it. Your eyes glazed over, your hands clawing at his back as you chanted âfuck, fuck, fuckâ like a mantra, wave after wave of euphoria washing over every nerve in your body.
â
Spencer was a man possessed, his primal urges leaving his mind completely uninhibited, so lost in your body that he thought he might need divine intervention to ever leave you.
He didnât quite understand where the sudden dominant urge coursing through his veins had come from, but he didnât care to dwell too much on the thought, content to fuck you into the mattress until you screamed his name.
He knew that wouldnât happen, but he secretly hoped youâd realize who he was, wishing for nothing more than for you to want him for him. His heart felt like it may burst at the thought, the desire to be wanted as he was ever-lingering inside of it, that being the very motivation behind his lingering tendencies from the start.
As your heat contracted around him, he felt an embrace like no other, hoping the myth of twin flames to be true. If this connection wasnât proof of it, how could he rationally explain anything? He knew the scientific reasoning behind it, but it didnât feel like enough, such a finite explanation for a feeling so sempiternal.
He wondered if you felt the same way too, so lost in his every desire that he let himself dive into the delusion, using the pet name he wished he could call you every day for eternity.
Your chants and cries as you came set him free, his hips stuttering as he finally filled your aching cunt to the brim with his seed. He hovered above you, catching his breath, watching your expression soften as you rode out your orgasm, practically glowing.
When he finally snapped out of his lust-fueled haze, he fully remembered his role, pulling out of you and quickly scrambling to stand, fixing his pants and underwear. You had agreed to his departure after, and as badly as he wanted to hold you until you drifted off to sleep, he respected your wishes more than his wants. He walked to the window, lifting his leg to climb out of it when you cleared your throat, drawing his attention. He turned, seeing you sit up, hazy smile on your face.
âThank you.â You sighed, and he gave a nod of acknowledgement before slipping out of the window and into the night.
â
When you awoke, you had a couple minutes of doubt in which you thought the events of the night before had all been a dream, until you moved to get out of bed and winced at sting from the shallow marks adorning your body and the dull ache between your legs. You smiled to yourself, before looking at your phone and realizing what time it was. You were going to be late, and panic set in when you realized youâd have to go to work in the makeup youâd fallen asleep in last night.
You rushed out the door, checking your makeup in a compact mirror in your car, wiping a small bit of smudged mascara off of your brow bone before walking into work.
âFun night?â Derek quipped as you walked through the doors, always the first to poke fun at your perceived escapades.
âYou could say that.â You laughed, setting your handbag on your desk before joining the team to walk to the conference room.
âWhat happened?â Penelope asked, almost panicked, taking your arm in her hand and pointing to the only visible cut on your body.
âOh thatâs nothing, I just scraped my arm on my car door.â You reassured, smiling at her. As much as you loved your best friend, she didnât need to know the truth of your little white lie.
âYou should really be more careful next time.â Spencerâs voice came from behind you, his hand gently resting on your hip before squeezing right where the heart shaped cut from the night before was inlaid in your skin. His words reverberated in the space between your ears as your brain processed what heâd just said.
Realization hit you like a semi truck, your lips parting in shock. Your suspicions had been correct, and you almost wanted to turn around and kiss then interrogate him right there. You couldnât do that though, having a full work day in front of both of you.
Now you just had to figure out a time and place to broach the subject with him without completely humiliating yourself.
ââ
part 2 can be found here
tag list: @pleasantwitchgarden @lover-of-books-and-tea
DM me or send me an ask if youâd like to be added to my general or spencer reid taglist :)
#dividers by cxrrodedcoffin#spencer reid#spencer reid criminal minds#spencer reid fanfic#spencer reid fanfiction#spencer reid x fem!reader#spencer reid x reader#spencer reid x self insert#spencer x reader#spencer reid smut#criminal minds#criminal minds fandom#criminal minds x reader#criminal minds smut#knifeplay#knife k!nk#mask kink#mask k!nk#knife tw#dubc0n#mine#my writing#gun tw#pervert!spencer#perv!spencer#1k
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
IN THE NETHERWOOD
PART III
KINKTOBER 2023 †WEREWOLF!SANEMI X RED RIDING HOOD! READER
PART I HERE †PART TWO HERE
A/N: DEAD DOVE DO NOT EAT. READ THE FUCKING WARNINGS BEFORE YOU REPORT. Special shout out to @homo-homini-lupus-est-1701 for being my medical reference and @ghost-1-y for reading this behemoth ahead of time and helping me spot errors. I owe you both my firstborn. TW: dead dove do not eat âą explicit violence/gore âą references to non-con against several characters (not depicted) âą mutilation âą self-mutilation/injury (broken bones) âą references to torture (not depicted) âą brief description of dismembered body âą Douma is a sadist âą references/mentions of characters being eaten alive âą death âą angst CW: explicit sexual content âą MDNI âą monster-fucking âą werewolf fucking âą Giant wolf cock âą mates/mating marks âą heat cycles âą breeding âą cum so much fucking cum âą belly bulging âą dick imprint âą cum swelling âą oral sex (F! And M! Receiving) âą scent kink âą breeding kink âą creative use of the mating bond âą vaginal fisting (?) (idk Sanemi has his whole hand in her at one point) âą vaginal fingering âą possessive/protective mates âą discussions of pregnancy
The suffocating quiet of the Netherwood was broken by the sound of your high-pitched, breathy moans, echoing off the walls of the small den in which youâd spent the last three days.
You supposed you should watch your volume, given that you were in the thick of the Wood, surrounded by plenty of hungry, prowling creatures that would love nothing more than to gnaw on one of your limbs, but you found it increasingly difficult to care, given the presence of Sanemiâs head between your quivering thighs.
Oh well. If the two of you ended up some nightcrawlerâs dinner because you hadnât been able to suppress the sounds of your pleasure as the Huntsmanâs tongue lazily swirled your entrance, then at least you would be leaving this world floating on a cloud of bliss.
Though, in fairness, you thought you deserved some credit for attempting to keep yourself quiet. Youâd tried to slap a hand over your mouth to stifle your cries and pleading whimpers as Sanemi worked you with his tongue and fingers, but the Wolfâs other hand had reached up the length of your torso to pull your arm away.
âLet me hear you, Lamb,â heâd murmured against your cunt between teasing sucks at your swollen nub. âYou always make the most beautiful sounds for me.â
As if to make a point, heâd driven his tongue straight into your entrance, and youâd been unable to stop the answering wail that tore from your throat, or your fingers from gripping harshly at his hair, desperate to keep him close. Before long, the Huntsman brought you to climax once more with your legs locked around his head at your knees and his hands clenching tightly around the meat of your thighs. The moment the essence of your pleasure hit his tongue, Sanemi groaned, loud and wantonly, and pressed your core tighter against his mouth until you were certain he couldnât breathe in anything that wasnât you.
âWould it shock you to know I have a sweet tooth?â He panted after he pulled away, his cheek resting against your inner thigh as it quivered with the aftershock of your ecstasy. âUnhealthily so, as a matter of fact; it borders an obsession.â His eyes dropped down to your core which glistened with the combination of fluids from your pleasure and his mouth. His pupils blew wide. âAnd yet, I have never encountered a vice as sweet as you, little Lamb.â He pressed a sweet kiss against your slit before he danced his mouth across the delicate skin of your inner thighs, every touch of his lips soothing the way they trembled as you came down from your peak.
âIâm your glutton,â he whispered against your navel as he trailed his lips up your body, limp from equal parts satisfaction and exhaustion.
The Wolf covered your slightly shivering form with his, his head dipping to nuzzle affectionately at your neck.
âHow are you feeling?â Sanemi asked shyly, moving to brush his nose against yours. âHave you any discomfort?â
You made a point of stretching against the furs, shifting each joint and flexing every limb to test its mobility.
âPerhaps a little soreness,â you said after a moment. âThough I admit, it is not nearly as bad as I wouldâve expected.â
Sanemiâs hands stroked along your skin, the Huntsman directing you to guide him to where any ache lingered, his fingers stopping to gently massage any area where youâd even slightly twitched beneath his touch.
âThat might be because of me,â he murmured as his fingers worked a tender spot on your hip. At your raised eyebrow, he added with a smirk, âMy saliva heals.â
He rolled to his back, bringing you atop him, his hands threading gently through your hair.
âDo you feel any different?â You whispered, fingers painting circles in the dip between his generous pectoral muscles. âNow that Iâve accepted the bond?â
You felt him grin against your hairline. âYou mean besides feeling the utter bliss of having such a beautiful, delectable, and downright sinful little mate?â
You rolled your eyes. âI was being earnest.â
âAs was I,â Sanemi flipped you back under him, settling in the cradle of your thighs, his weight braced on his forearms that came to rest by your head. âYou are truly an irresistible little creature.â
âBut if youâre asking whether I feel changed,â Sanemi paused, dipping his head down to trail heated kisses along your neck. âThen yes, little Lamb. I feel the bond.â
Your hand found the back of his neck and tugged him down for a needy kiss. âIn what way?â You murmured after you broke away.
Sanemi propped himself up on an elbow above you, his cheek resting on his fist, and he let his some of his weight press against your stomach. The Huntsman was quiet for a moment, his eyes tracing over your your features as he thought.
âThe bond serves many purposes,â he began, the index finger of his other hand coming to trace the shape of his mating mark imprinted between your neck and shoulder. âI told you we would be able to feel the otherâs emotions through it.â
You nodded, catching the hand toying with your mating mark in yours. Sanemi smirked as he interlaced your fingers with his, holding your hand tight.
âIt is more than that. We can use the bond to communicate with one another in a way.â
âYou mean speak to one another? Through our minds?â You tapped your fingers against his forehead.
Sanemiâs soft laugh was intoxicating. âNot quite,â he shifted over you until his torso rest flush against yours, his weight a blanket you wished would never leave. âClear your head for a moment.â
You closed your eyes and willed your mind to still. Sanemi leaned forward and pressed his forehead against yours and waited.
After a moment you felt a tug in the back of your mind â as though someone had attached an invisible string to your head and now pulled on it.
âLet your mind open,â came Sanemiâs quiet murmur, his warm breath heating your lips. âLet me in, sweet Lamb.â
Another tug on that string and you felt something bloom â like doors pushed open by a soft wind, allowing sunlight and fresh air to filter through its opening.
Eyes still closed, you smiled. âI feel you,â you whispered. âThough I donât hear you.â
âConcentrate on the feeling â we canât talk to one another, not like we are now,â Sanemiâs fingers trailed comfortingly through your hair. âBut we can speak through our emotions.â
You furrowed your eyebrows slightly, narrowing your focus in on the emotions floating down your shared connection.
Sanemiâs presence in your mind felt like a question â no, a request.
Your eyes flew open. With a wide grin, you surged forward and pressed your lips hard against his.
Sanemi chuckled into your kiss, his hand sliding along your jaw as he deepened your connection for a moment, before pulling away. âThatâs my girl.â
âThatâs incredible!â You breathed excitedly. âAll because of the bond?â
The Huntsman nodded, moving his lips down to kiss the hollow of your throat. âBecause you accepted the bond, Lamb.â Sanemi settled beside you, pulling your hand up to his mouth, his lips brushing repeatedly over your knuckles and fingers. âAnd now, whenever you wish it, I can feel what you feel and contrawise.â
âSo I will only feel you if I open up the bond to you, first?â
âAye, though,â Sanemi added, âI suppose if whatever it is either of is experiencing at a given moment is particularly strong, the other will feel it even without first needing to open up the bond.â
You pursed your lips in thought. âSo if, say, I was feeling exceptionally happy-â
Sanemi hummed in agreement. âIf it was that powerful, I believe I would feel it, too, no matter where you were.â
âAnd if I was feeling something even stronger than happinessâŠâ you continued, a faint blush warming your cheeks.
The Huntsman raised an eyebrow in amusement. âAye, Lamb, I reckon Iâd feel that, too.â
You had never been one to let your emotions run free, but you could think of no better time than to unlatch the chain that for so long youâd kept locked over your heart. With a serene smile you let go of that inner leash, allowing every ounce of emotion youâd come to harbor for the Huntsman whoâd saved your life â in more ways than one â pour forth.
Sanemiâs eyes widened as he felt every bit of it â your gratitude, your joy, and most importantly, your love â surge forward down the mating bond.
âOh, Y/N,â he whispered hoarsely, his hand caressing your face. âMy darling little Lamb. I do not deserve you.â
âBut I love you all the same.â He murmured before kissing you softly, reverently.
Though Sanemi had insisted earlier that the two of you needed to be on your way if you were to make it back to the Wolvesâ territory before nightfall, it was he who coaxed you into wrapping your legs around his hips once more.
As heâd rolled gently into you, arms wrapped tightly around your trembling form, he allowed his own emotions to pour into you down the bond, until you could not tell whether you cried from pleasure or from the overwhelming depth of his love.
Home, you thought just before he helped bring you over the edge. Sanemi felt like home.
--
When Sanemi finally pulled away from you, the late autumn sun hung high overhead. With a groan, the Huntsman rose from your nest, running a hand through his rumpled hair as he cursed you for being âtoo damn enticing.â
You sat up and winced slightly at the warm fluid trickling down your thighs. Beneath the slight soreness that still pulsed through your lower body, between your legs felt slightly gooey and sticky.
âI donât suppose we have time to bathe before continuing our journey,â you lamented. Sanemi looked over his shoulder back at you as he tugged on his breeches, his mouth pulled into an apologetic half-grin.
âSorry, sweetling, but we need to move. We donât want to be stuck here when night comes.â
He rummaged in his satchel for a small handkerchief, pulling it free before moving towards the remnants of the small fire that heâd put out and dousing the cloth in the water heâd warmed for tea.
He motioned for you to lay back against the furs of the nest. You obeyed, spreading your legs slightly for him. Sanemi looked almost proud at the mess heâd left behind as he gently wiped away the remnants of your coupling with the warm cloth.
You hissed slightly at the contact, still sensitive. Sanemiâs fingers were quick to massage the skin of your thighs to ease your tension. âThis is the best I can do, for now.â
Once heâd cleaned you up the best he could, Sanemi brought you the layers of your dress from where heâd safely stored them before his heat struck.
As you dressed, it dawned on you that you had no idea what was to become of you, now that youâd been bonded to the Huntsman tasked with escorting you through the Wood.
Youâd propositioned him with an amended bargain â to lead you to another human village, where you could decide whether you wanted to stay with him or part ways, but that was before the bite tying you to him; before youâd opened your body up to him to claim and make his.
Though you felt confident that Sanemi did not intend on abandoning you now, without a clear idea of your path, you couldnât shake the uncertainty which sat like a weight in your stomach.
âWhere do we go from here?â You kept your tone light as your fingers laced the cord of your stays. âDo you still wish to see our bargain through?â
Sanemi looked quizzically at you as he shook out his tunic. âYou mean, do I intend to still take you to another human village?â
You nodded, letting the curtain of your hair fall before your face to conceal the way you chewed anxiously on your lower lip.
The Huntsman scoffed lightly. âNo, Lamb. I am taking you home with me.â
You chanced glancing up at him. âYour home?â
âAye.â
âThe cabin, then?â
He shook his head. âThat cabin is where I stay when Iâm helping travelers through the Wood, but I donât consider it my true home.â He looked at you with a soft smile. âWe will go to the Wolvesâ territory in the East. Where my brother and packmates live.â
Sanemi made quick work of clearing out the den once the two of you were properly dressed. Heâd made a small fire to burn the furs used for the den nest, explaining the need to cover the remnants of your scents from any creatures tempted to follow after you as he tossed them one by one into the flames.
Once youâd secured your cloak around your shoulders and nestled your basket in the crook of your arm, and Sanemi his satchel across his back, the pair of you set off, anxious to reach the Wolvesâ lands by nightfall.
Youâd not been traveling for long when you spied a bubbling creek only a few lengths away from the path Sanemi had marked as safest to take, a ribbon that formed an unassuming partition that broke up the claustrophobic Netherwood. At once, the filth coating your skin â a mixture of sweat and sticky fluids from both you and your mate â felt all the more pronounced the longer you stared at the clear, crisp water.
âAre you certain we donât have time to stop and refresh before continuing?â You shuddered at the thought of meeting the members of Sanemiâs pack unwashed with the remnants of your time in the cave den still lingering upon your skin â especially if they possessed the same sense of smell as your mate.
As if on cue, a piercing shriek tore through the trees, accompanied by an unsettling tremor that rippled across the forest floor. Above you, the Woodâs canopy shifted, though there was no wind to disturb the treesâ leaves.
Sanemiâs arm locked around your waist and the Wolf tucked you protectively into his side. His lips curled back in a snarl, his teeth bared as he scanned the tree line before you, his nostrils flaring as he scented out the threat. Save for the thundering beat of your heart against your sternum, you dared not make a sound.
Another distant roar echoed through the Wood before it was cut off by a sickening yelp. You tried to pretend the ominous crunching noises that followed was the mere product of your heightened and over-sensitive imagination, but Sanemiâs soft growl indicated he too, had heard the sound.
The crunching faded and a familiar stillness settled back over the Netherwood once more. Sanemi remained in his protective stance for a moment longer before finally relaxing, though the tightness in his features signaled he remained on high alert.
âDoes that answer your question, Lamb?â
âY-yes,â you answered meekly, voice high. The Huntsman nodded stiffly, casting one final look back toward the direction of the unnerving disturbance. His arm remained tightly around your waist as he gently guided you along, resuming your trek away from whatever danger lurked just out of sight, though at a more urgent pace.
âTalk to me, sweetling,â Sanemi squeezed your hip, bringing your focus back to him and away from the endless expanse of cursed Wood at your back. âTell me about life in the village.â
It took you a moment to process what heâd asked. âYou mean, before Douma?â
âAye.â
You adjusted the hood of your cape over your head. âQuaint.â You decided after a moment. âWe were so very isolated from any other village â stuck between the Netherwood and the base of a great mountain range.â
âIt was rare to receive visitors from the other side of the Wood, and just as uncommon for any of us to attempt the journey. Only the truly desperate did that â usually to get aid for a sick loved one.â You chewed on your bottom lip. âThat is how I lost my parents and ended up in my grandmotherâs care.â
Sanemi nodded. âI remember you mentioned your parents disappeared into the Wood when you were a girl,â his arm dropped from its protective position around your waist in favor of looking through yours and tucking it into the crook of his elbow.
His other hand covered yours and squeezed. âAnd your grandmother?â He prompted gently. âYou seem very fond of her.â
âI was,â you smiled, wistful. âShe was my favorite person; she doted on me â and Kotoha, too, though we were always causing her grief.â
The sound of Sanemiâs quiet laugh helped still some of your errant nerves. âYou, causing trouble? I cannot believe it â not my innocent Lamb.â
âIâm sure you can imagine what sort of strife two, rambunctious adolescent girls caused, especially for an old woman.â You said fondly. âI think Granny gave up hope that weâd mellow out upon reaching adulthood. She accepted sheâd never have a demure, proper granddaughter.â Your heart squeezed under the mournful weight of her passing as it sunk into your chest like a stone. âIâm not sure she wouldâve wanted it any other way.â
Sanemi hummed in agreement. âAnd Kotoha â she was your closest friend, no?â
âMore a sister than a mere friend. We were joined at the hip from the time we could walk. Our families were neighbors, for a time.â Youâd managed to keep your emotions in check as youâd spoken of your grandmother, but the mention of Kotoha brought a lump in your throat you couldnât swallow around, no matter how hard you tried.
âWhen her family learned she was with child out of wedlock, they tossed her into the street. My grandmother took her in.â
The hand you had nestled in Sanemiâs arm curled into a fist. âBut Douma sent his proposal to her parentsâ house, and they showed up not long after, demanding Kotoha agree to his offer. They claimed it would save her reputation,â you scoffed, a bitterness coating your tongue.
You remembered the way your Grandmother had vehemently argued with Kotohaâs parents, outright refusing to hand her over to deliver to the sinister Worship Leader, but it hadnât mattered. Your friendâs parents were soberly aware of the rumors which swirled around the disappearances of Doumaâs previous wives, and they still insisted on selling her daughter to the beast. âTheir pride,â you seethed. âThat was all that they cared about. Not hers; not her safety. Douma paid them handsomely in exchange for her hand â like she was fucking cattle.â
Sanemiâs sneer matched yours. âIf there is one thing I despise about humans, it is how they treat their women,â he said darkly. âThe utter disregard for their agency and willingness to sell them into violence for the sake of elevating their own status is abhorrent.â
He shook his head in disgust. âThat her parents knew of the threat Douma posed and persisted anyways is unforgivable.â
You furtively rubbed at your eyes, hastily wiping away the angry tears that threatened to spill down your cheeks. âYes, well,â you said thickly, and Sanemiâs arm tightened around yours. âYou know how the story ends: Kotohaâs bones dumped in the Wood.â A derisive laugh bubbled up in your throat, but you managed to hold it in. A tense moment passed as the two of you wrestled with the truth youâd left unspoken â that Kotohaâs death was what led you into the Netherwood, and it was the reason youâd found Sanemi at all.
You were alive and she was not.
Guilt settled like a blight over your heart that you were desperate to avoid. You cleared your throat, forcibly swallowing the lump of sorrow lodged there in favor of tucking it tightly away; youâd save that battle for another day.
âIâve talked far too much,â you complained, twirling your basket in your free hand. âIs there anything else the bond can do? Beyond communicating through our emotions, I mean?â
âFor example,â you glanced up at your mate. âAm I immortal now?â
âEven Iâm not immortal, Lamb,â Sanemi said, a soft smirk on his mouth, and you were grateful for the ease with which he allowed you to change the course of your discussion. âSo you most certainly arenât.â
The two of you came across a small, rocky stream, frozen over by a thin layer of ice. It was almost too wide for you to leap across, but Sanemi managed to step over it with ease. He turned back to you and braced his hands braced either side of your waist, lifting you up and over the water, before tucking you back into his side. âThough, you might age slower. Wolves have a longer life span than humans; that mark might extend your life to match mine.â
âNot that I mind,â he added quickly, his hand squeezing yours. âI cannot imagine facing any stretch of years without you in my life.â His face darkened. âTo not feel you down the bond â I donât even want to imagine it.â
You looked at him, curiosity brimming in your eyes. "The bond can break?"
âAye, Lamb,â and there was a heaviness in his eyes that made your heart clench. âDeath severs the mating bond.â
You felt a chill run down your spine. âJust like that?â
âJust like that,â Sanemi confirmed. âLuckily itâs the only thing that breaks it â so no matter how far apart we may be, I will still be able to feel you, and you me.â
âThere were legends that certain kinds of magic could sever the bond â without killing either mate,â Sanemi continued, the nostrils of his nose flaring every so often to scent the air around you for any signs of danger. âThere were monsters â called Fae, though they were more like demons â that once roamed the Wood that had an appetite for eating other powerful creatures. They would manipulate the bond to create panic and lure out such beasts to consume.â
You shuddered. âAnd they had the power to cut a mating bond? Or at least manipulate it?â
Sanemiâs expression was dark. âAye. Blood magic, they called it.â His eyes cut quickly to yours and softened at the sudden stiffness he found in your shoulders. âBut itâs all legend, Y/N. No one in living memory has even seen a fae, let alone one that can use blood magic.â
The tightness youâd felt in your chest eased slightly at his assurance. âThatâs a relief,â you smiled up at the Huntsman. âAnd itâs good to know I wonât accidentally cut it off should I ever become cross with you.â
âI canât imagine how you could ever become cross with me, Lamb,â he replied cheekily. "And if you ever do, I expect all I'll have to do to get back into your good graces is drop to my knees and beg for your forgiveness with my tongue.â
You felt your cheeks heat. You stubbornly bit down on your tongue, too proud to admit the Wolf was likely right. You ignored his smug smirk as you cleared your throat, opting instead to push forward with a change in subject. âYouâve not told me about your true home â is that where your brother lives?â
âAye,â the arm Sanemi used to escort you tightened slightly. âAlong with a few friends.â His face turned dark for a moment. âWhatâs left of us, that is.â
Your hand squeezed his forearm in comfort. âYou mentioned he stayed with a friend, but you never explained why.â
âGyomei. He was the one who brought us to the Wolvesâ territory â raised us.â His face tightened for a moment before he looked at you, affection brimming in his eyes. âAnd because you were being nosy.â Sanemi reached to tap the tip of your nose with his finger. âI didnât want you prying. Not when you were going to leave in the end.â
You gave him a wry smile. âAnd yet I am still here.â
âThat you are, Lamb.â He winked before sighing. âTo put it simply: Genya is a boy who thinks heâs a man. He tries to act accordingly.â
âMeaning?â
âHeâs got a temper and so do I.â Sanemi snorted. âDidnât mix well in close quarters.â
You couldnât fight the small grin forming on your lips. âYou? Having a temper? I canât imagine.â
He paused for a moment. âWe got into an argument about him patrolling our lands by himself, and he ended up shifting in our den.â The Huntsman rolled his eyes. âTried to take a bite out of me and everything, the little shit.â
âPatrol?â
Sanemi nodded. âWe have a designated territory â itâs belonged to us for a few generations, going back to Kochoâs grandfather.â At your questioning look, he clarified. âShinobu, that is. She was Kanaeâs younger sister.â Kanae. It must have been the name of the one Sanemi had mentioned was once considered his mate-to-be before sheâd disappeared in the Netherwood, never to be seen again. The very reason Sanemi had gone into self-imposed exile, committed to escorting lost stragglers through the Wood, if only to help them avoid her fate.
âThough our borders are relatively strong, we have to maintain regular patrols of the land to ensure no creature attempts to stake a claim,â the Huntsman continued. âAs a result, the scariest thing which resides in our territory are the rabbits, which have a nasty little habit of shooting out from underbush and over your feet.â A playful smile spread across his face. âThey make Shinobu jump every time.â Â
 âAnd Genya -- how do you think he will react to me?â You asked carefully.
âHe wonât be a danger to you, if thatâs what youâre worried about,â Sanemi said quickly, before scoffing. âIâll be shocked if the brat isnât hiding under the bed, tail tucked between his legs.â
Your excitement over the limitless possibilities of your future was tempered by your unease over the unknown. Soon, so soon, you would be meeting Sanemiâs family, and you'd no idea how they would react to the arrival of his new, human mate. âThen let us make haste,â you said brightly, hoping your smile concealed some of your nerves. âWe shouldnât keep him waiting.â
â--
Despite the odd growl or trill of creatures from beyond the Netherwoodâs shadows, the rest of your journey was uneventful, particularly in comparison to earlier in the day. It was difficult to tell exactly how late it had grown, given the persistent darkness of the Wood, but with every bit of ground you two covered, Sanemi grew more and more relaxed. Furthermore, while youâd come to understand that part of the Netherwoodâs sinister charm was the endlessness of its domain, forever dark and unchanging no matter how deeply you ventured into its howling void, youâd noticed a slight shift in the terrain under your feet, the ground slowing tapering into a downhill path. The trees ahead of you began to thin, allowing small slivers of light from the sky above to filter through the skeletal branches of the Woodâs canopy, enabling you to see more of the area without the need squint as youâd grown accustomed to doing elsewhere in the dense forest.
âWeâre approaching our territoryâs Western border,â Sanemi explained, having recognized the curiosity which bloomed in your eyes. âOnce we pass through that thicket,â he pointed his chin to a small opening ten yards ahead. âWe will only be half an hour from the dens.â
âThat far?â Your eyebrows rose in surprise. âYour territory is that large?â
âAye,â Sanemi said smugly, his shoulders squaring in pride. âAnd our borders remain stable.â
âCome, Lamb,â he ushered, a newfound pep in his gait. âLetâs go home.â
--
The Western border was nothing special; it was merely a small clearing dotted by a few towering elm trees and a copse of brush and brambles. You were about to pester your mate with more questions about his territory and the Wolf pack when you spotted a familiar cluster of flora growing in a small thatch right at the edge of the border. You tore your hand from Sanemiâs arm, too excited by the sight to pay mind to his small grunt if indignation. âSnowdrops!â You clapped your hands joyfully. âYou have snowdrops here! And theyâve bloomed!â
Sanemi answered your giddy grin with one of his own. âIâve always wondered what these were called. Are you fond of them, Lamb?â
You knelt down without regard to the cold wetness that spread across the fabric of your skirt where your knee met the frozen, muddy ground. âTheyâre my favorite,â you said softly, stretching out your hand to graze your fingers over the delicate, bell-shaped petals of the small flowers. âMy grandmotherâs, too. We used to pick them at the start of each winter.â You frowned, thumbing at one of the blooms. âIt seems too early for them to have bloomed, still. The Winter Solstice is still several weeks away.â
âPerhaps winter is arriving sooner than usual,â Sanemi hummed, plucking a single flower from the earth. Gentle fingers brushed back a lock of your hair, tucking the small bloom behind your ear. âLovely,â his eyes roamed your face, full of quiet adoration, and his hand dropped to caress the curve of your jaw.
You felt your cheeks warm. âIâll have to return here soon and gather more â for my Grandmother.â
Sanemi nodded and helped you stand. You brushed the front of your skirt free of any loose dirt, and together, the two of you ventured deeper into the safety of the Wolvesâ territory.
As the small slivers of sky above you darkened, the dense cluster of trees grew sparser until the landscape suddenly blew wide, forming a yawning mouth deep within the Wood. As the two of you reached the edge of the tree line, you could see the way the forest floor tapered into a narrow path that gradually sloped downward before it opened, revealing a lush, hilly valley at its base. The rolling hills sprawled across the vale were broken up by smaller clusters of trees and brush, though it wasnât nearly as dense as the Wood looming at your back. Standing above the gorge as you were, the peculiar arrangement of the foliage gave the distinct impression that the vegetation merely served to provide some privacy for the sloping mounds below.
Your position above the territory also revealed the curious sight of smoke drifting lazily above a few of the small hills. You studied the way it rose in steady, controlled columns, but you were unable to pinpoint its source even from where you stood at the outer limit of the Netherwoodâs great maw. You gasped. âIs that --?â
âAye,â Sanemi nodded. âOur homes are built into the hills themselves. Think of it as a cross between a wolfâs den and a cabin.â The Huntsman folded your hand into his and together, you descended the valley. As you drew closer, you realized the hills containing the dens were larger than youâd initially believed, with each standing at least two or three times the size of the cave den where Sanemi had claimed you as his mate.
The Wolf led you past the first of the foothills, and to your surprise, you caught sight of a small door nestled in the center of the cavern. It was with no shortage of delight that you spied small, purple flowers painted its trim. âThatâs Kochoâs â Shinobuâs,â Sanemi nodded at the den. âSheâs away right now; she often travels to human villages to the South â where you wanted to travel when we first met.â
âShe makes that journey alone?â You turned to him in wide-eyed surprise. âWhy?â
Sanemi shrugged. âShinobu is something of a doctor â she studies medicine.â The small den disappeared behind you as he led you by your hand through the first small, twisting spinney of trees. âShe often checks in on the humans in the villages on the other side of the Wood and provides aid where needed. Otherwise she purchases supplies she canât collect on her own here.â
You walked a little way through the winding bramble, the trees lining the path bent towards one another, forming a half-tunnel of branches before giving way to another clearing. There, nestled alongside a small brook, sat another cave den, the slope of which was covered by a twisting mass of vines, browned and leafless in the late autumn night.
âAnd this is home,â Sanemiâs hand squeezed yours. âIt looks better once the leaves have bloomed.â He led you to the small, wooden door built into the rock forming the cave. The border of the doorâs frame was etched with small, delicate carvings, slightly faded from age and weather.
It seemed soâŠhuman.
Sanemi fished a small key free from the pocket of his satchel, strapped safely around his shoulders and slid it into the doorâs lock. With a heavy groan, the door swung open under the push of his hand, revealing the homely cottage within. The Huntsman helped you over the raised threshold into the den, allowing the door to remain open so that the dwindling light of day could illuminate enough of the main floor of the cabin until he could stoke a fire to life in a great hearth at the center of the room. âItâs not much,â Sanemi admitted as the light from the fireplace bathed the room in its warm, orange glow. He rubbed sheepishly at the back of his neck. âBut itâs ââ
âPerfect,â you finished, breathless. You turned back to him and greeted his wide eyes with a broad smile. âSanemi, itâs perfect.â And it was. The small entryway gave way to a surprisingly spacious and open room. The large mantle of the fireplace was its centerpiece, standing in the middle of the wall to your left. Straight back stood a large bed â larger than any youâd ever see â covered in thick layers of furs and knitted blankets. On one side of the large, logged bed frame was a sizable armoire; on the other, an antique washstand. A clay stove was nestled into a corner on your right, accompanied by a small wooden counter below a series of cupboards. While the room was open, there remained one corner obscured from sight by heavy curtains. You turned to your mate in question, eyes flickering back to the enclosed space in wait.
âThe bath,â Sanemi nodded at the curtains. A wicked smirk curved his lips. âPlenty big enough for two.â
You blushed and continued your appraisal of his cave den. The floors were wood, but had been sanded down and smoothed, enough that you were sure you could walk across it barefoot without worrying about splinters. Several rugs were spread across the floor of various sizes, the largest of which was sprawled before the large fireplace. âThis is incredible,â you murmured in awe. âI donât know what I imagined, but your home is lovely.â
âOur home,â he said roughly. âThis is your home now as much as it is --,â
The door to the den flew open with a sharp bang! startling both you and your mate. Instinctively, Sanemi swept you behind him, crouching slightly before you in a defensive stance, his hand flying to the hilt of his small axe where it was secured against his hip.
Before you stood a towering form of a man, though the figureâs face, as it came into view, bore all the telltale signs of youth, his features considerably softer than those of the Wolf softly snarling in warning before you. It struck you, however, that despite his lingering baby fat, the man â boy â before you, was a mirror of your Huntsman. Even without the jagged scar crossing his cheek and nose â a twin to Sanemiâs â the resemblance between the two brothers was striking. Though the he had darker hair, worn in an unusual mohawk that reached his shoulders, Genya possessed the same eyes as your mate, right down to the precise deep lavender hues of his irises.The younger Shinazugawa was lankier than his elder brother, but what he lacked in brawn, he made up for in height, possessing a good inch over Sanemi. Despite the clear presence of well-defined muscles slightly straining beneath his tunic and breeches, however, Genya possessed the lumbering awkwardness of youth. His shoulders hunched inward in an effort to take up less space than he occupied, and his arms hung stiff at his sides, as though he wasnât quite sure what to do with his hands. The clumsiness of his frame complemented the gracelessness of his speech. âW-what â w-who?â He sputtered, gaping between his brother and you in wide-eyed disbelief. âAniki?â
Beside you, Sanemi snorted under his breath. âY/N. Her name is Y/N.â
You gave the young Wolf a warm smile. âItâs wonderful to meet you; your brother told me a great deal about you.â
Apparently, addressing the boy only served to fluster him more. He could scarcely meet your eyes, instead flushing a bright shade of red as he shifted awkwardly from foot to foot. Sanemi groaned, exasperated. âGods above, Genya,â and the younger Shinazugawa looked sheepishly to his brother. âAt least acknowledge her.â
Genyaâs blush only deepened, his cheeks rapidly turning a deep shade of maroon as he mumbled apologies under his breath. His inability to meet your eye appeared to irritate the Huntsman, and Sanemi snarled at his brother in warning. Before he could snap at the bashful young Wolf, you laid your hand placatingly over his. Instantly, Sanemi relaxed, and his arm wound around your waist to hold you close as he settled.
Genyaâs nostrils flared slightly. âA mate?â He whispered, looking to Sanemi in awe. âYou claimed a mate?â His eyes flickered to you briefly, widening. âAnd sheâs human?â
âAye,â Sanemi nodded, though with a curious stiffness. ââS why Iâm late. She was being tracked through the Wood.â
âA human in the Netherwood?â A spark of interest flared to life in his eyes, some of his blush fading as his curiosity dimmed some of his shyness. âY-you managed to make it all the way to b-brotherâs cabin?â
It was the first time Genya addressed you directly. âIn a way,â you looked up to your mate with a small smile. âThough, I stumbled across him by chance more than anything.â You nestled affectionately into his side, and the Huntsmanâs eyes dropped to yours. Feeling slightly bold, you fluttered your eyelashes at him, lips parting to give him the softest of smiles. Sanemi shifted beside you, pressing you harder against him. He cleared his throat and looked away, and to your amusement, you spied a faint blush creeping up the side of the Huntsmanâs neck.
The moment of flirtation was lost upon the younger boy looking eagerly to his brother. âWas there a fight? Against the men following you? Does she ââ his eyes cut to you and back. âDoes she know?â
âShe knows we are wolves,â and the brothers exchanged a meaningful look, one that did not slip past you unnoticed. Before you could question it, Sanemi added, sternly, âAnd she has accepted the bond. She is part of the pack now.â
Genyaâs eyes shifted furtively back to you, but when he met your open, welcoming smile, he hastily dropped them back to the floor. âN-nice to meet you,â he mumbled shyly. Though his hulking mass suggested he was a fully matured man, Genyaâs painful bashfulness gave away his boyishness.
Your grin widened. Oh, he was adorable. Absolutely precious.
Genyaâs temporary embarrassment was fleeting, for he quickly looked back to his brother, clearly antsy to talk as he shifted his weight from foot to foot. âHow was the journey?â He asked. âDid you see any monsters? When did you find her â in a village? How long have ââ
To your bewilderment, you felt the Huntsman at your side grow more and more tense with every question his younger brother pelted at him, his agitation nearly palpable. You were about to interject on his behalf when the white-haired wolf finally snapped. âGenya, fuck off,â Sanemi snarled, his arm tightening possessively around your waist.
You whipped your head toward the Huntsman, ready to give him the good verbal lashing he apparently needed, but the young boy only smiled, sheepish.âSorry, Aniki,â Genya rubbed the back of his neck. âI forgot.â
âDonât apologize,â you chastised the boy, gently. âIt isnât your fault your brother has lost all sense of decorum.â
Genya flushed. âN-no, itâs not,â he stammered in agreement. âB-but you see â well, when a wolf takes a mateâŠâThe younger boyâs blush deepened to a near purple, his mouth opening and closing like a fishâs as he struggled to find the appropriate words.
Growling slightly under this breath, though more so in annoyance, Sanemi shifted himself behind you, pressing his hips against your rear. You felt his length, hard and throbbing against his breeches, as it dug sharply into your backside. Your mateâs silent explanation made your cheeks warm, and you wondered whether your blush matched Genyaâs. âOh.â You managed to choke.
Genya rocked awkwardly back on his feet. âIâll come by later, Aniki.â He croaked. âY/N,â he added, nodding at you though still unable to meet your eyes. The boy turned sharply on his heel, half stumbling out of the small cottage den in his haste to get away, proverbial tail indeed tucked between his legs.
The door had barely banged shut before Sanemi had you pressed up against the wall of the cabin, hauling you up so your legs had to wrap around his waist for support. âI shall explain in full later,â he promised, fingers ripping the cord out of your corset so he could yank it down along with your blouse, exposing your breasts. âBut right now, I need to claim.â
âS-sure,â you stuttered, gasping as the Huntsmanâs hot mouth closed around one of your mounds, his hands working to shove your skirts out of his way. One arm remained under your backside, keeping you propped up against the wall, and the other moved to shove his breeches just far enough down his hips to free his cock, already standing taut and ready to fill you.
Sanemi did not give any warning before he plunged his rigid length deep into your walls, though you were surprised at how readily you took him, you cunt sucking him in as though it too, had been waiting for him to remind you exactly whose mark you bore on your skin. The Wolf nudged your head to the side with his nose so he could bury his face into the side of your neck, inhaling deeply. With a low growl, his tongue flicked out and caressed the crescent-shaped mating mark at the juncture between your neck and shoulder before he nipped lightly at your skin.
âMine,â he snarled. âYouâre mine.â
Despite being pinned against the wall by his hips, you managed to spread your thighs wider, opening yourself up further to allow Sanemi to pound into you without restraint, but he pulled away. You cried out at the sudden, cold emptiness you felt as Sanemi pulled out of you, leaving your core to wildly clench around nothing. The Huntsman soothed you with hot kisses against your throat, his thumbs rubbing circles into your outer thighs as he pivoted you away from the wall. Sanemi crossed the small room easily, making quick work in ridding you of your skirts and corset. Once the last of your attire had been discarded on the floor, he tossed you onto the delightfully plush bed standing against the middle of the wall, his gaze locked onto the way your breasts bounced as you settled. His eyes lifted back to yours as he wrapped one hand around the base of his engorged length and pumped, the other shoving the waistband of his trousers down his hips and legs until he could kick them off. âTurn over.â There was a darkness in his tone that thrilled you. âAnd get on your knees.â
--
You spent the remainder of the evening being filled again and again by Sanemi.The sun had set by the time he finally collapsed upon the bed beside you, strong arms locking around your middle to pull you onto his chest. You hummed contentedly against his warmth, your cheek sticking slightly to his sweat-slicked skin as you settled against him.
âIâll confess, I did not know what to expect for my first day here,â You said, fingers tracing lazy patterns into the Huntsmanâs skin. âBut I cannot say Iâm disappointed.â
Sanemi huffed a quiet laugh at your teasing. âThis wasnât what Iâd envisioned when I first decided to bring you back,â he admitted, his hands smoothing over your back, gentle and light. âI didnât realize howâŠwound up I would be since you accepted the bond.â
You propped your head up on the steel of his abdomen, peering up at him. âIs that why you snapped at Genya? The bond?â
âAye,â the Huntsman admitted sheepishly. âIâve heard that newly mated wolves can be territorial of their partners, but Iâll confess, I did not know how intense it would be.â
You felt warm and giddy at the idea Sanemi had felt possessive of you, even amongst family. âYour little brother posed no threat,â you playfully chastised him, peppering kisses across the expanse of his upper abdomen. Sanemiâs muscles clenched beneath your lips and you smiled; youâd learned he was ticklish, and you secretly enjoyed making him squirm.
âItâs not that I believed him to be a threat,â Sanemi caught your chin between his fingers and tilted your head up towards him, his expression growing smug. âI know I do not have any true competition when it comes to you.â He leaned down until he was but a hair from your lips, his warm breath washing over your face. âBecause no one else could possibly keep up with your insatiable appetite, Lamb.â
You caught his lower lip between your teeth, demanding with a small whine that he kiss you. Sanemi obliged, but pulled back before you could slide your tongue into his mouth and deepen your connection. That smug grin on his face remained for a moment before melting into something slightly more serious. âBut itâs not that I think I have competition â it is more so that I am hyper-aware of any potential threat to you. And my impulse is to eliminate it.â
You furrowed your eyebrows in curious thought. âIs it because youâre in heat?â
Sanemi nodded. âI must be, considering I still was able to knot you.â
âBut you didnât shift,â you wondered. âAt least, not as you did that first time.â
The Huntsmanâs fingers trailed up and down your bare arm. âTrue,â he sighed. âBut you also hadnât yet accepted the bond.â He thought for a moment. âAnd it was my first time with a human; I have better control over myself now.â
You lifted your head up in surprise, eyes wide. âDoes that mean â?â
âAye,â he nodded. âI donât think that cloak of yours will be necessary again. At least, not while Iâm knotting you.â
It would have been futile to make any attempt to stifle the thrill of joy that shot through you thanks to Sanemiâs promise, and so you didnât bother to try. Your mouth spread into a grin, wide and feral, at the prospect, and your cheeks burned with your excitement.
âGods,â he groaned. âI am beginning to think the animal here is you, Lamb, and not me.â
You traced your lips over his pectoral, sucking a small bruise into his firm flesh. âThen perhaps I should be the one who wears the leash, Wolf.â
Sanemi caught your chin between his fingers and tugged you up his torso with a growl. âI can arrange that, sweetling,â he whispered hotly against your lips before bringing you in for a searing kiss. Swiftly, the Wolf flipped you back under him, and to your delight, you saw his cock had hardened once more. âIâd rather like to see you restrained.â
You giggled as he nudged your legs open and settled between them. With a contented sigh, you arched your back as your Wolf pressed the head of his length to your leaking, swollen entrance and he slid home once more.
--
Your first few days in the Wolvesâ territory passed by without much fuss. As it turned out, Shinobu was not the only one away on business; Gyomei, the one responsible for Shinazugawa brothersâ care as boys, was also on an errand, though Sanemi did not specify what that task was.
Genya had been glued to Sanemiâs side since he returned, giving his elder brother a full, detailed report of everything that heâd missed in his time away at his other cabin in the Wood. Evidently, Sanemi had not been home for several months, though youâd learned that was not uncommon; Sanemi spent the majority of the year helping humans cross the Wood, returning home only for a few weeks in the winter. Youâd tried your best to bond with the younger Shinazugawa, but no matter what you did, the boy could scarcely meet your eye, always flushing the same, deep shade of crimson anytime you so much as acknowledged his presence. Truthfully, it was a little disheartening, but you were determined to make friends with him. Youâd just have to get more creative, it seemed.
Shinobu returned to the Wolvesâ territory almost a week after your arrival. Sanemi had been in the process of dressing after a particularly rigorous morning with you, which involved the Wolf making good on his vow to have you spend as much time perched upon his face while he feasted on your cunt, not stopping until youâd fallen limply to the side, unable to hold yourself up any longer. He'd been lacing the front of his breeches when his head suddenly lifted, head cocked toward the door to the cabin den as he listened. A broad smile spread across his face and he looked back to you, still wrapped in one of the soft furs on the bed. âKochoâs back.â
Once youâd dressed and Sanemi had secured your red cloak snugly around your shoulders, the pair of you set off toward the foothills youâd passed when you first arrived. You savored the scent of pine and evergreen which perfumed the small pocket of trees partitioning Sanemiâs den from Shinobuâs, and spotted several witch hazel bushes peppering the needle-covered floor. Â Sure enough, there was smoke rising from the small, concealed chimney located atop the small hill containing Shinobuâs den, and the door was left open. Sanemi scented the air once and pulled you toward a small ravine across from the hillside, his fingers interlaced tightly with yours.
âKocho!â He called as he navigated his way down the rocky cliffside, turning to you to brace his hands against your waist and help you down.
You spotted a slight figure kneeling by a small, shallow body of clear water. She stiffened as the two of you drew near, and rose gracefully to her full height. She turned to you, hands lowering the hood of her intricately patterned cloak. Shinobu was petite and rather doll-like; her lips were set in a serene smile, but her eyes â large, and a deep plum â were sharp, if not slightly cold. âMy, my,â the female Wolfâs voice was as delicate a butterflyâs wings, and her nostrils flared slightly as she scented the air. âYouâve found yourself a mate, Shinazugawa.â Slowly, her eyes dragged down you from head to toe, considering. âA human one, at that.â
âThat I did,â Sanemi frowned as he considered his packmate. Now that youâd closed the distance between yourself and his packmate, you saw sheâd been cleaning off various sharp tools in the creek below.
Her piercing gaze lingered on the cloak around your shoulders. âWhat an interesting heirloom.â She sniffed the air around you. âWhatâs a human doing with an enchanted cloak?â
You were taken aback at her less than welcoming greeting. âIt was my grandmotherâs,â you said softly, fighting the urge to wrap your arms around yourself in your self-consciousness.
âTch, what has you all sour?â The Huntsman demanded, eyes narrowed at his packmate. âI donât recall interrogating you when you finally mated ââ
Shinobuâs eyes flashed. âIâve just returned from a rather tedious journey â which went fine, thank you for asking,â she shot back. âAnd I am tired.â Those discerning, violet orbs found you once again. âYour name?â
You managed to keep your voice steady and clear as you answered her, even as your stomach twisted with nerves.
âA pleasure,â she nodded at you before turning her attention back to Sanemi. âI trust youâll fill me in on the details of your time away after Iâve had a chance to settle, hm?â
He rolled his eyes. âAye, as soon as you remove whatever stick youâve got lodged up your ass.â
Shinobuâs cheeks flushed a faint pink, and a vein bulged in her temple. With a huff, the doctor quickly gathered her tools and primly stalked past you and and your mate, her shoulders rigid and spine straighter than an arrow. For a beat, you remained standing there, in shock. âThat â that could have gone better.â You said quietly after a moment.
Sanemi turned and watched his packmate retreat back to her den, his eyebrows furrowed. Understanding suddenly dawned on his features, his hand rising to rub tiredly at his eyes. âAh, I see.â Sanemi chuffed. âDonât pay her any mind,â he added quickly at your raised eyebrow. âSheâs irritable because her mate is on the other side of the Wood, preparing for the Winter Solstice. And I suspect Shinobuâs heat is approaching.â
Heâd mentioned the young doctor was also mated. âWhat is Shinobuâs mate like? Is he a Wolf, too?â
âShe,â Sanemi corrected. âAnd no. Sheâs a nymph. A Naiad.â
Your eyes widened, curiosity blooming in your chest. âA nymph! My grandmother used to tell me stories about nymphs â how beautiful they are, and how there is no sound sweeter than that of a nymphâs song ââ
âSweet?â Sanemi snickered. âI would not call Mitsuriâs voice âsweet,ââ he shook his head. âEvery time we cross paths, I seem to leave the encounter with a dull ache in my skull.â
You felt slightly mollified. âDo you not get along, then?â
âMitsuri is Shinobuâs mate â that makes her part of our pack,â The Huntsman said firmly. âNo matter how much the silly girl vexes me.â
âWhat is she like?â You wove your fingers between the Wolfâs. âI have never met a nymph.â
âHn. Pink.â Sanemi snorted. âVery pink. Very talkative.â He took your hand in his and the two of you made your way back up the rocky slope of the small gully, in the direction toward home. âYouâll likely meet her after the Solstice. The Naiads still celebrate the old traditions of the gods, and from what Mitsuri has told us, such festivals involve weeks of preparation.â He rolled his eyes. âKocho gets rather irritable when sheâs away. Especially the closer she gets to her heat â usually during the full moon.â
Once youâd reached the path that led toward home, Sanemi looped an arm around your shoulders. âTry not to think ill of her, Lamb. Sheâs a good woman; a sister to me and Genya.â
You nuzzled into his side, grateful for his warmth against the brisk, late-autumn chill. âPerhaps I shall try to make her acquaintance again, maybe tomorrow â?â
âNo you wonât,â Sanemi sternly interjected. âYou did nothing wrong; she needs to come to you â and she will.â He kissed your hair. âBut nevermind that for now â come, Iâll show you where Genya and Gyomei reside.â
--
Sanemiâs prediction rang true; for the next morning, not long after heâd departed from your den to go hunt with his younger brother, a knock sounded at the door.
It was Shinobu. She held out a small basket, covered with a cheesecloth. âI brought some rations â I wasnât sure how much Sanemi had, as itâs been so long since heâs been home.â You lifted the cloth, blinking in surprise at how much the doctor had packed. From just a quick once-over, you spotted various saches of dried meats and nuts, as well as a few jars of clear liquid. âSyrup,â she added, as you accepted the bundle with a heartfelt thank you. âYou can use it to preserve fruit and make jams, if youâd like.â
She took a deep breath, squaring her shoulders. âI was wondering whether youâd like to assist me with some of my duties,â though she kept her head held high and her voice was clear and firm, there was a softness in her eyes as she regarded you. She gave you a warm smile, and you realized she likely did feel remorse for how terse sheâd been the day before. âIf youâre interested in botany, that is.â
You returned her smile with one of your own. âI used to gather all sorts of herbs and plants for my grandmother â for medicine and food. We were no doctors, but we could help villagers out with minor injuries and ailments.â
She brightened. âEven better,â she turned away from the entry to your cabin and lifted the hood of her intricately patterned cape over her head, shielding her from the dreary mist raining down from the gray sky above. She tilted her head back and sniffed the air once before turning back to you. âThere is more rain to come; dress warmly and meet me at the cliff near my den. Weâll travel together.â
You nodded and Shinobu retreated back in the direction of her home. Once youâd dressed and wrapped yourself in your grandmotherâs cloak, you gathered your basket and set off. âI apologize for our meeting yesterday,â Shinobu glanced to you as you walked down the ravine, the Wolf offering her arm to you for support. âThe full moon is drawing near, as is my heat. Iâm in the rather difficult position of having to endure it without my mate.â
You waved her off. âI understand, I did not think ill of you. Your mate â Mitsuri? Sanemi told me she was a Naiad.â
The raven-haired doctor nodded. âMy heats are less frequent than the Wolves â the boys,â Shinobu said airily, humming as you walked along the winding path. âAnd unfortunately, Shifters and Nymphs do not have the best history. My presence among Mitsuriâs kind tends to cause tension for her.â Though her tone remained light, the sudden appearance of a small vein ticking at her temple betrayed the extent of her annoyance. âAnd while my love is earnest when she says she does not care what the others think, I care on her behalf. I donât want her to feel ostracized by her own kind on my account.â
Your curiosity piqued at her use of Shifter as opposed to Wolf, but you were distracted by a pang of sympathy at the young womanâs revelation. âSo you two must continue living apart?â
âMmm, but not forever,â Shinobu sighed. âMitsuri comes from a line of nobility among the Nymphs; as such, she is set to inherit her own river once she reaches her quarter-life day, which is only a little over two years away.â A small smile tugged at the corner of her mouth. âOnce she lays her claim on her inheritance, she will be able to live separate from the other Naiads, as is custom in her culture. Then I shall join her.â
A low whistle blew past your lips. âIâd not realized the Nymphs were soâŠpolitical,â
Shinobu hummed in agreement. âAll Nymphs practice the old ways of the gods, and their internal hierarchy is merely one of the more archaic systems which has persisted over the centuries.â A sudden shadow passed over her features. âI cannot fault her kind for it â the Fae wiped out so many cultures and subsects of the Nymphs that they cling to what few traditions theyâve managed to salvage.â
âThe Fae?â You cocked your head, eyebrows furrowing in thought. âSanemi mentioned something about them once â that they possessed magic of sorts.â
The dark-haired Wolf nodded. âNo one knows how or why they came to be so entwined with magic; all that is known is that they abused it and sought to dominate all others â humans and creatures alike, and they sought to devour anything with power. They nearly eradicated Shifters like Gyomei and myself, as well.â
You barely suppressed a shiver. âWhat happened to them? Sanemi said the Fae had fallen out of existence.â
âThey have, as far as anyone knows,â Shinobu held out a hand and helped you climb the small cliff leading back to the dens. Though she was slight in stature, her strength was still great, and she hauled you up with ease. âThere was some sort of battle led by a clan of Sun worshippers â Phoenixes,â she explained. âIt is said that they wiped out the Fae, but they too, have faded from existence.â She bit her lip. âIt is all myth and legend now.â
Despite the presence of your cloak and the security of the Wolvesâ territory, Shinobu insisted on walking you back to the cabin den you shared with Sanemi. âHeâd probably rip my throat out if he learned I left you alone; weâre still in the Netherwood, after all.â Sheâd simply explained.
Once youâd arrived safely home and bid Shinobu farewell, you set to work sorting through the bounty youâd gathered, separating the flora into piles for medicinal use and sustenance. Sanemi returned from his patrol with Genya before sundown, his smile wide as he saw you standing in the small cooking area, stripping the leaves free from the winterberries youâd gathered to make jam. âShinobu is quite taken with you,â The scent of pine and spice washed over you as the Wolf came up from behind to press a soft kiss against the nape of your neck. âI might have to battle her for time with you.â
You chuckled. âIn that event, then perhaps I should run off with Mitsuri. Iâve heard that Nymphs can be ardent lovers.â
Sanemiâs teeth playfully nipped at the side of your neck. âEven those as licentious as the Nymphs would have difficulty keeping up with your desires, Lamb. âTis best to leave that duty to a master.â
You glanced back at him over your shoulder, eyebrow raised in suggestion. âAnd are you my master, Wolf?â
âNo,â He replied evenly, ducking to press a slow, open-mouthed kiss against your mating mark. Your knife clattered to the counter as your hand shot back to tangle in his hair, that familiar, sensual heat spreading thickly through your blood from where Sanemiâs lips caressed the brand. âBut you are mine.â His fingers dug into your waist, pulling you tight against his broad form as he sucked at the juncture between your neck and shoulder. A moan fell from your lips as you tilted your head to the side, allowing him greater access, but his hands fell away from you and he stepped back with a quiet laugh. Your eyes flew open and with a frustrated groan, you whipped around to glare at him. Sanemiâs shot you a devilish smirk as he walked back to the fireplace, tugging one of the wrought iron pokers free from its stand beside the hearth. âSomeone must see to the fire,â he tsked.
âAnd yet you leave mine untended,â you grumbled, turning your attention back to your discarded task. Nonetheless, a comfortable silence fell over you as you both worked, though the quiet allowed your thoughts to wander back to your earlier discussions with the packâs only female member, your mind snagged on a particular choice of her words.
âI wonder,â you hummed, crushing the berries with the flat side of your knife. Sanemi looked up from where heâd been stoking the small fire, waiting. âWhy is it you and Genya are âwolves,â but Shinobu refers to herself as a shifter?â You scraped the pulp of the fruit into a small jar, turning to the cupboard behind you to rummage its shelves in search of the small bottle of syrup Shinobu had given you. âIs it merely a difference in preference?â
Sanemi prodded a log in the fireplace with a poker, a sudden unease settling over him. âNot exactly,â he grimaced, rocking back from the hearth to dust his hands off on his breeches. âWhat Genya and I are is quite distinct from what Shinobu is, though we be pack-mates.â
Your fingers closed around the small vial of syrup youâd searched for and you turned back towards the small wooden counter, unstoppering the bottle.âAre you going to keep me on the edge of my seat waiting?â You teased, pouring the sweet, viscous liquid over the berry pulp youâd gathered into a small glass jar.
But the Huntsman gave neither snarky jab nor flirtatious quip in response to your barb. Instead, you watched as a darkness settled in over his face, his eyes fixed unseeingly upon some spot on the floor. You felt a heat creep up your neck, akin to embarrassment. âI didnât mean to pryââ
âGenya and I were born human,â Sanemi said quietly. âOn the outskirts of a village on the other side of the Wood.â
âHuman parents,â his voice was heavy. âAnd four other human siblings.â You left the small counter where youâd been canning and preserving food for the winter, coming around to where Sanemi sat before the hearth, where you knelt before him, listening. âOur father was a bastard who got himself killed in a tavern brawl; no one was particularly sorrowful when his body was dumped at our doorstep,â Sanemi grimaced. âThough it did make us more vulnerable to outside threats; not having a proper man in the home.â His eyes cut to you. âI was no more than three and ten.
âI wonât pretend like it wasnât difficult,â Sanemi continued, âbut Genya and I made a promise to care for our family and we managed well enough.â He stared blankly into the fire, eyes not truly seeing the flames that danced in the hearth. âFor a while, we were happy.â
You worked to swallow the lump forming in your tightening throat. Young â heâd been so young to take on the burden of caretaker for his family, and yet heâd done it without a second thought.
A pregnant pause followed before Sanemi spoke once again. âAnd then the beast came and it slaughtered them all.â He whispered, and the horror in his eyes looked as fresh as heâd undoubtedly felt it all those years ago. âWe were getting ready for bed. Genya and I were helping put our siblings down for the night. Ma was so exhausted â sheâd been working herself to the bone doing clothing repairs for everyone in the village. Every night, she came home nearly dead on her feet, and sheâd still find time to tuck us all in and wait for us to fall asleep.â Sanemiâs eyes shone with unshed tears that made your heart clench. âShe was a great woman, our Mother. Selfless. Kind. Determined.â He shook his head, his free hand wiping harshly at his cheeks. âIt was a normal night â thatâs what kills me about it all; it was just a night like any other, until it wasnât.â His fingers squeezed yours. âThat thing tore down the door to our home and it ripped my mother and little siblings to shreds.â Sanemiâs eyes shone with unshed tears, his voice thick. âGenya and I tried to fight it â even managed to knick it â but it cut us down like a pair of string puppets. By the time we awoke, the creature had been chased away, and there was nothing left of our family except their blood â splattered across the wall and soaked into the floorboards.â
Your own eyes began to prickle with tears at the heaviness that settled over your mate. Gone was the Huntsmanâs usual self-assured swagger; now, Sanemi sat slumped against the floor, his shoulders curled forward in defeat. âIt was Gyomei who found us half-dead near the door to our home,â Sanemiâs glassy eyes remained fixed on your joined hands in his lap. âAnd it was he who brought us to a Mage living on the outskirts of the Wood. Genya and I were in rough shape â convulsing, frothing at our mouths like a pair of rabid animals,â he snorted, derisively. âI sâppose thatâs what we were; a couple of beasts. The Mage â no one knows his true name,â Sanemi quickly amended. âAnd even those that do know only call him âthe Masterâ â but he worked tirelessly through the night to tame the curse set upon me and my brother.â
Sanemi withdrew his hands from yours and leaned back, and the distance between you felt like an unbreachable chasm. Gently, you prodded. âCurse?â
âI am no simple Wolf, Lamb.â Sanemiâs face was tight, and a cursory glance at his hands revealed balled fists, his knuckles white. âI am something far worse. Damned.â
âI donât believe that,â you leaned forward and tried to cover his hands with yours once more, but he only shifted back, shaking his head.
âThe seal the Master bestowed upon us allows us to appear and act as ordinary wolf shifters.â He looked pained as he lifted your eyes to meet yours. âThe wolf you have come to know â that you believe I am â it is only a mockery of what lies beneath my skin.â He shuddered. âThere is a beast sealed deep within me. No matter how many years itâs been, no matter how much time passes, I always feel it there. Lurking.â
You tried once more to reach for him. âSanemi ââ
âA Werewolf,â he croaked. âThatâs what they call the thing sealed within me. Werewolf.â
This time, Sanemi did not stop your hands as they reached to gingerly cradle his face. His head dropped into your palms in apparent shame and guilt, as though youâd ever believe he would have anything to feel shame or guilt for.
âYou were turned?â Your thumb stroked the silvery scar which marred his cheek.
âAye,â Sanemiâs eyelashes fluttered against your palm at your touch. âCreated by the very beast which slaughtered our family.â The Huntsmanâs hands wrapped around your wrists but he did not pull them away. âWerewolves are made; no one knows how the first one came into being â only that it went on to create more, and those cursed creatures then continued to spread their filth across the land.â Gently, he removed your hands from his face, but he did not push you away. Instead, he folded them in his and brought them to rest in his lap. âAll that is known is that a Werewolf creates others by blood â usually through sharing blood with its victim through some sort of wound.â Sanemiâs thumbs smoothed absently over your knuckles. âYet we are a rare breed. I have never met another apart from myself and my brother.â He grimaced. âI donât even know whether the beast that cursed us is still out there, praying on other poor, unsuspecting souls.â His voice quieted to a whisper, his eyes fixing hard on some distant point along the planked wood of the cabin floor. âAfter we saw the Mage, Gyomei brought us here. He didnât think we should remain around humans at the time.â Sanemiâs face crumpled under the weight of his devastation. âI am a monster.â
âYouâre not,â you insisted. âA monster wouldnât help escort lost travelers through the Wood to safety. A monster wouldnât have fought to protect a woman he barely knew from a group of armed men when it would have been so much easier to hand her over.â
Sanemi snarled softly at the reminder of the way Doumaâs men tracked you through the Netherwood, but you only kept pressing. âA monster wouldnât have offered to give up his one chance of mating another to someone for the mere sake of making her harder to track â for her safety.â
Sanemiâs eyes finally met yours and you hoped he saw the fire blazing within them as strongly as you felt its burn.Â
âSo do not sit there and tell me you are a monster. Not when everything youâve done has been for the sake of others.â You leaned forward on your knees, once again closing the distance heâd tried to put between you. âDo not insult me by thinking my love for you is so weak.â You took his face between your hands, forcing him to hold your stare. âThe time for me to run has long since passed and I have never had the intention of doing so.â
Sanemiâs lips parted as he beheld the fierce conviction limning your stare.
âWhatever else it is that you are, you are mine.â You said hotly. âThat is what the mark means, does it not? First and foremost, no matter what, I am yours and you are mine.â You sealed your oath with a kiss, bruising and heated. Sanemi paused only for a moment before responding with fervor, his lips moving roughly against yours.
He broke away with a ragged pant. âWhere did you come from?â He breathed in wonder as one thumb ran over your cheek. âWhat have I done in my life to deserve something so good?â
âYou are good,â you insisted, catching his lips in another heated but short kiss. Your fingers untangled themselves from his hair to instead grip the collar of your blouse. With a sharp tug, you yanked it to the side and exposed the silver crescent mark seared into your skin. âAnd it does not matter, because I am here and I am yours.â
Sanemiâs hands dropped to your waist, holding you with a possessive tightness. His nose ran along the length of your neck before he buried his face against your mark. âI love you,â he murmured into your skin, voice raspy with emotion. âFrom now until the end of time itself, I will love you.â He pulled back to brush featherlight kisses over your eyes and cheeks. Sanemi looked upon you with such intensity that it made your legs tremble. If it werenât for the grounding warmth of his hands, one cupping your face and the other braced against your lower back, you were sure you would have melted into the floor, nothing more than a puddle of love and desire and utter devotion. "My little Lamb," he cooed softly before he leaned in and brought his mouth against yours in a gentle kiss.
You could not return his declaration out loud - not as Sanemi lifted you from the floor to walk you back towards your bed. His tongue slid between your lips, nimble fingers making quick work of the lacing on your stays, and suddenly, words became too difficult to form. But your Huntsman had taught you how to communicate with your body as powerfully as you could with your voice. So with every layer of clothing shed, with every press of lips and gasp and moan pulled from your throats as your bodies slid together, you cast your heart into the ethos of the mating bond. I love you, you whispered down that shining, golden thread, again and again. I love you. I love you.
--
The winter solstice was rapidly approaching, now no more than a fortnight away. The days grew increasingly shorter, plunging the Netherwood into a near constant state of darkness with only a few, precious hours of dull gray light. The specter shifting lazily through the Wood was not bothered by the fading light of day; his kind had never been hampered by differences in time or the seasons. Instead, theyâd prided themselves on being able to fluctuate with change; it was what allowed them to assimilate with their prey, foxes in coupes full of hens that preferred to turn a blind eye to that which they did not want to explain.
And it made it easy for him to follow the trail his prey had so kindly left for him and him alone, allowing him to linger two steps behind while the object of his desire was none the wiser. Soon, very soon, his patience would be rewarded and they would be reunited. If he timed his reveal just right, the Wolf and the Girl would be properly bonded, and the Girl would bear the proof. So with a hum, the specter continued his languid trek through the Netherwood, following that invisible thread only he could recognize, and he closed in on his target.
--
The days soon bled into weeks, and before long, half a month had passed since Sanemi had first brought you back to his territory to live with him. It was remarkable how easily you settled into life with the Wolf pack of the Netherwood, and youâd attained a great many things since arriving home with Sanemi: freedom to do as you pleased; stability.
A shadow.
That shadow was really a certain adolescent Wolf, whoâd obstinately refused to get near you since your initial meeting the first night youâd spent on the Wolvesâ land. Youâd tried everything to engage with him; greeted him, asked about his day, asked if he would like to stop by your den for dinner â efforts of which had been sorely unsuccessful.
âYour brother still runs away every time I come within five meters of him,â you grumbled to your mate one night as youâd furiously chopped herbs. âItâs driving me mad.â
The Wolf huffed a dry laugh âNot surprised. Though Iâm impressed youâve kept at it; I wouldnât have blamed you if youâd told him to piss off by now.â
âI have better manners than that,â you sniffed. âI just wish I could think of a way to connect with him, but he wonât get close enough for me to try.â Your knife work paused as an idea suddenly came to mind, Sanemiâs attention lifting away from where he busied himself with polishing his axe. âWhat about asking him to help me gather materials for Shinobu?â You asked, eyes brightening. âHe always lurks whenever Iâm in the Wood searching for the plants she uses for her medications and salves.â You chewed on your bottom lip, wracking your brain for your few, scant memories of Genya trailing behind you as you navigated the Wood. Though youâd sensed his presence more than you actually saw the young boy â he was rather adept at hiding behind the breadth of the trees â the few times youâd caught sight of him, youâd seen the intrigue in his eyes as youâd worked. âI think he might want to help with gardening.â
Sanemi blinked. âI hadnât thought of that.â He rubbed at his chin in thought for a moment, before a smile formed on his lips. âI think itâs a rather clever idea, Lamb.â
âIâm known to have them on occasion,â you replied drily.
The Wolf ignored your snark with a chuff. âYouâll need to needle him a little before heâll agree,â Sanemi warned. âBut just keep doing it while heâs around, and his curiosity will eventually get the better of him.â
You frowned. âI donât wish to force the poor boy to make my acquaintance ââ
âItâs not that,â Sanemi was quick to reassure. âHe wants to â and he wants to learn about gardening. He has always had an interest in forestry and plants.â He shrugged as he added, âItâs you heâs afraid of.â
Your knife clattered against the wood of the small counter. âMe?â You turned towards your mate in wide-eyed alarm. âBecause I am human?â
âNo,â Sanemi snorted. âBecause youâre a woman.â He set his axe down beside the table and stood, coming around to the side of the small island where you stood. He drew up behind your back and slipped his arms around your waist to reach for your discarded knife, picking up where youâd left off chopping the roots of the herbs youâd gathered. His breath was hot against your neck. âA very beautiful one, at that.â
You couldnât help but lean back into his sturdy warmth. âYour attempts at flattery donât change the fact that your brother can hardly stand to be within ten feet of me.â
âNot flattery if itâs true,â Sanemi countered. Before he could continue chopping the flora youâd gathered, you placed a hand on his forearm, stilling him. He laid the knife flat against the tabletop and loosened his hold to allow you to turn in his embrace and face him.
âI meant to ask you something â about your curse,â your fingers absently toyed with the leather tie on his tunic. Sanemiâs arms tensed slightly around you, but when he did not push you away or otherwise protest, you forged on. âYou said your curse was sealed â by a mage,â and the Huntsman nodded as you looked to him for confirmation. âA seal implies something can be opened; unleashed.â
The Huntsmanâs features drew tight in understanding. âYou want to know if and how the seal can be broken.â You nodded, carefully noting the subtle shift in the shadows which haunted your mateâs eyes.
âI sâppose in a manner of speaking, it can â anything can be broken,â he said evenly, his own fingers moving to toy with the end of your brain where it hung over your shoulder. âThe real question is whether itâs likely.â
âAnd?â You prodded. âIs it?â
Sanemi smirked. âI donât reckon it is. I would have to be pushed beyond the limits of my sanity for the seal to break.â He paused for a moment, thinking. âThe way Gyomei explained it, is that I would have to lose all ties to myself to find the beast â and to let it take over.â
You stared blankly at him, eyebrows drawn together. âI donât follow.â
âMy humanity, Lamb.â Sanemiâs knuckle caressed your cheek. âAs I said, I may now be a Wolf, sweet girl, but I was born a human â as was Genya.â His eyes tightened, a heaviness settling over his features. âMy heart remains so, even if the rest of me is not.â His hands dropped to yours and he guided you gently to the fireplace, tugging you down to sit with him upon the great fur rug spread before the hearth. âSo long as I have my humanity, the seal will never be broken. It is why I can shift into Wolf form â I have control over myself so long as I remain me.â
You leaned your head against his chest, quietly mulling over his words. âWhat would make you lose your humanity, though?â
âNothing,â the Huntsman replied smoothly. âWhich is why you have nothing to fear, my Lamb.â
âSince I answered your question, I have something I want to discuss with you as well.â He reached out to run the tip of his finger down your nose. His eyes softened at your slight giggle, and he audibly gulped when the grin slid from your face as you leaned in closer, waiting.
âWhat is it?â
âYou mentioned â the first night we arrived,â Sanemi started; though he steadily held your gaze, there was a heat simmering in his eyes and a faint blush that crept onto his cheeks. âYou asked that I give you pups â children.â
You flushed as the memory in question sprang to the forefront of your mind. The Huntsman was being far too generous in his recollection â you were quite certain youâd asked him to do something far moreâŠscandalous than simply grant you the gift of bearing his children. Breed me, Wolf! Youâd cried. Give me your children â your pups!
âIs it even possible?â You asked quietly. âThat I might bear your children?â
Sanemi was quiet for a moment before nodding, slowly. âOnce, it was not uncommon for Wolves to mate with humans â particularly, human women.â He leaned forward to cup your cheek. âThe pups that were born from such unions had just as much power and strength as their pure-Wolf counterparts.â He paused, considering. âSometimes, they were stronger.â
Your fingers wrapped around his wrist. âAnd what of your curse?â You asked gently. âWould that be passed on?â
The Huntsman tensed slightly before he relaxed, a soft smile tugging at the corner of his mouth. âNo, Lamb. The curse of the Werewolf cannot be passed along through offspring.â
Though you felt slightly relieved at his reassurance, you took care not to show it. âAnd you said it was your duty to impregnate me â as my mate,â you shifted forward, knees straddling his thighs as you settled in his lap. âIs that true? Is that the purpose of the mating bond?â
âOnce,â Sanemiâs voice was hoarse, and his eyes dropped to your lips. âThe mating bond was originally used for breeding purposes, yes.â You felt his cock stir beneath his breaches as one hand stretched behind him to steady himself, the other settling on your waist. âBut thatâs no longer its sole function,â a tendon in his neck pulsed as you began to softly rock against his groin. âShinobu marked her nymph, though she cannot impregnate the girl. They are still tied â out of love.â Sanemiâs eyes dropped to your shoulder, where the silvery crescent of your own mark peeked through the collar of your blouse. âAnd I marked you for the same â not to mate and seed you, but to protect you.â His fingers ghosted along your sides, and even through the layers of your skirts and corset, you could feel his heat burning your skin. âOut of love.â
âBut is that something you want, Wolf?â You trailed your fingers along the sharp curve of his jaw until they slid into his hair. âTo fill me with children?â You leaned in until you felt his warm breath brush against your lips. âTo breed me?â
A strained sigh of your name blew past Sanemiâs lips. âI can understand that you might say things while Iâm inside you that you do not mean,â And though his hands stroked along the curve of your legs, pushing your skirts up as they went, there was a solemnity in his gaze. âBut you do not owe me your body that way.â
You knew he meant it. âAnd if I wanted you to use my body for such a purpose?â Your thighs squeezed around him as you pushed yourself up his lap slightly so your lips hovered over his. âIf I wanted to bear your children?â
Sanemiâs lips chased yours, but you rose just far enough out of his reach. âThen I would do everything in my power to see your wish granted.â His hand caught the side of your jaw, his fingers curling into your hair to still you. âI would give you as many as you desired.â
He pulled your face back down level with his. Just before he could reconnect your lips, you whispered, âI want it, Sanemi. Fuck a child into me.â
Sanemi sprang forward with a speed that made you squeal. Rather than finally close the distance between your lips, Sanemi laid you back against the rug sprawled before the great hearth, caging your body against the cabin floor with his.âIf your wishes be true, then I wonât hold back,â he promised, his hips pressing heavily down against yours. You tried to fidget beneath him, to roll against him and feel the hardness that signaled he was ready to claim you, but Sanemi only pinned you harder against the floor. âBut if there is even the slightest doubt in your mind, you must tell me at once,â and you froze at the gravity of his tone. âMy instincts are to claim you as many times as necessary until my seed takes, Lamb.â His eyes darkened with his sensual promise. âEven if that means I have to fully shift to knot you; I wonât stop until Iâve succeeded.â His tone dripped with caution and yet you could not for the life of you imagine why he felt the need to warn you â as though you werenât precisely aware of the stakes involved in asking a Wolf to breed you. âIs that what you want?â
As though youâd want anything else. âYes,â you whispered. âYes, that is what I want.â
The Huntsmanâs pupils blew wide, and his breath became ragged. Your fingers lanced up his forearms, tensed and braced on either side of your shoulders. âPut your babe in my womb.â Your words made the bulge in the Wolfâs trousers grow harder. "Let me make you a father, Sanemi."
Wetness pooled between your thighs as your cunt pulsed with need, and Sanemiâs nostrils widened. âThe gods as my witnesses,â he vowed, finally rolling his hips heavily against yours and granting you the stimulation you so desperately craved. âI will never be able to deny you, Lamb.â His mouth crashed down against yours and greedily, you drank him in, meeting each fervent stroke of his tongue with yours as it slid past your lips. His hands were urgent as they combed down your body, fisting and tugging at your dress as it slid up your legs. He broke away from your lips with a ragged pant, his mouth trailing hotly down your neck.
âAfter tonight, the next time I fuck you will be as a Wolf,â Sanemi swore as he shoved the hems of your skirts up. âBut if I have to wait any longer to be inside you, I will go mad.â Once he tugged the bodice of your corset down far enough to free your breasts, Sanemiâs hands flew to the seam of his trousers to yank on the lacing securing them around his hips. With a hurried swiftness, he shoved them down just enough for his cock to spring free, already hard and leaking. He lined the flushed tip of his length up with your entrance. âHow many, Lamb?â He asked as he gave one great thrust, embedding himself to the hilt inside your warmth without preamble. Your breath was sucked straight from your lungs as Sanemi began to move, fucking into you hard and deep on the cabin floor. âHow many pups shall I put in your belly?â
You only moaned, your thighs widening to allow him to hit deeper. Since first taking his knot, youâd had the Wolf in more ways than you could count, but there was something about this â this frenzied, passionate romp that made you melt further into the great rug upon which Sanemi now fucked you. âFive?â Sanemiâs voice beckoned you back from the folds of endless pleasure he stoked with every push and grind of his hips. âPerhaps six?â
Your hips bucked wildly up from the floor to meet his frantic thrusts. âA-as many as you w-want,â you gasped, and your promise only made Sanemi fuck you harder. âI w-want to be a good m-oh.â Your eyes rolled back as the Wolf wound one arm around your hips and braced the other against the cabin floor, allowing him to plunge faster and deeper into you. âA g-good mate,â your voice was little more than a squeak. âI w-want â oh, Sanemi.â The floorboards beneath you creaked as Sanemi repositioned his knees to roll harder into you. Every snap of his hips against yours was calculated and powerful, and it was all you could do to keep yourself open to him to use for this most sacred purpose â to breed.
âHowever many times it takes,â he vowed. âIâll fill you up with as many little ones as your heart desires.â
A high-pitched whine keened from your throat as you clenched harder around him. Your nails raked down his back and sunk into the firm muscles of his backside, pushing him closer and closer to you. It only spurred the Wolf on, Sanemi driving his cock into you with greater ferocity as the arm beneath your lower back forced you to arch into him even more. âEven if that means I have to keep you spread out in our bed for days, stuffed full of my seed,â Sanemiâs other hand pressed down below your navel, and you felt the tip of his cock brush against your innermost wall. His hand was large enough that his thumb could still stretch down and swirl around the nub between your legs. âIf thatâs what it takes, I swear I will do it â your belly will be swollen with my child by spring.â With his every stroke, the pleasure in your gut mounted and you knew it would not be long before you came apart completely. âIf we are together, I will be inside you. From now until my seed quickens in your womb.â His head tipped back slightly as he angled his hips up, plunging even deeper than before. Your walls clenched tighter around him and Sanemi moaned, loudly and without restraint. âCan you handle that, Lamb? Can you handle what it will take to give you what you crave?â
The grip you had on reality grew more tenuous by the second, the Huntsmanâs movements threatening to chase every last sane thought from your head. You spoke before you lost the ability. âI crave you,â you cried. âI crave a family with you â one that is born from my love for you, Sanemi!â
His answering groan cracked. His hands tightened around your hips, pulling you flush against his base as he ground harder into you. "Our love," he panted, voice strained. âOur family shall be born from our love.â Sanemiâs breaths turned ragged. His head was thrown back, and his eyes screwed tightly shut as he moved against you without rhythm. âI am a beast,â he groaned between the filthy curses that tumbled freely from his mouth. âBut you are my salvation â gods be damned â youâre fucking heaven, Lamb.â
Your cries grew loud enough to rattle the windows as Sanemi continued to drive himself deeper and deeper inside you until you swore you could feel the tip of his cock pushing against your gut. âS-Sanemi,â you whimpered, back arching even further from the floor. âSanemi.â
âI need to be closer to you,â Sanemi yanked you up from the floor and puled your chest flush against his. He balanced you atop his lap where he knelt on the floor, trembling as his thrusts turned sloppy. âFuck â Y/N â hold onto me.â
The movement of your hips was beyond your control. It was all you could do to wrap your arms around the wide breadth of his shoulders and hold on while the Wolf bounced you up and down his twitching length. His hold around your middle made it almost difficult to breathe; his fingers promised to leave bruises where they dug into your skin, and yet, somehow, he still wasnât holding you nearly tight enough.
With a snarl, Sanemi buried his face between your breasts, his mouth nipping and sucking its way across your chest, marking your skin with violent whorls of purple and red that he soothed with his tongue. âThese shall be even more beautiful when filled with milk,â he muttered between harsh nips at one mound, his hand palming the other. âYouâll nurse our children so well, sweetling â donât you see?â He jerked you harder against his lap to meet his frenzied movements. âYour body was made to be bred by me, Lamb. So â nghâ fuckinâ perfect.â Even through the boundless depths of the mind-numbling pleasure Sanemi stoked between your legs, you swore you could feel his cock begin to thicken with each plunge back into your heat. It had grown undoubtedly harder â almost impossibly so â but the sensation of his body began to echo that which youâd experienced during his heat in the cave.
But, it was clear from the way the Wolf drove up into you to the hilt, that no knot was forming at his base. Blearily, you forced your eyes to focus on him rather than allowing them to remain rolled up into your head as your mate worked you closer to your peak. To your surprise, you saw that Sanemiâs incisors had lengthened, sharpening into points closer to fangs than they were to human teeth. His eyes were still their usual shade of deep purple, but the whites around them had begun to glow, illuminating his irises into twin gemstones of amethyst.
It hit you, then, that Sanemiâs firm grip on his wolf form was slipping, and it had nothing to do with the moon cycle or his heat. He was losing control, simply too lost in his own instincts. It thrilled you. âBreed me, breed me please,â your sobs were almost incoherent. âI am yours, Wolf! Yours to fuck, yours to fill ââ
âMine,â he confirmed through clenched teeth. âMine to mate. Mine to love.â With a growl, Sanemi tucked his face into the crook of your neck. A rapturous cry broke past your lips as the walls of your cunt seized down on his thick length, catapulting you into bliss. You were grounded only by a sharp prick of half-fangs before pleasure, unbounded and uncontrollable, slammed into you with such dizzying force that you began to sob.
Sanemi had sunk his teeth right into your mark, igniting a searing, electrifying euphoria that struck you like a bolt of lightning. Your mind disconnected from your body; you were utterly unaware of the scream that tore from your throat and your mate was in no mood to silence it, not as he sucked his claim harder into your skin and soothed its throbbing with his tongue. Your towering high only began to subside once Sanemi unlatched his mouth from your skin, and you would have melted into the rug beneath you had his arms not tightened around your waist, keeping you anchored to the moment â to him.
Sanemi came with a deep groan that was slightly muffled by the way heâd buried his face against your collarbone. His biceps rippled from the way he held you close as he pumped into you, flooding you with his rich warmth. The Huntsmanâs hips finally stilled and he fell forward with you still wrapped tightly around him, his forearms shooting past you to brace behind you and keep you from thudding against the cabin floor. Once settled, Sanemi moved his hands to unwind your legs from where they were locked around his waist. Your soft whine of protest was soothed by his lips. âI need you to keep your legs up for me, sweetling.â He cooed, pushing your knees up until they nearly touched your chest. âWe want to ensure all my seed reaches your womb.â
You mewled softly against the hollow of his throat, where youâd pressed your face. Your arms stretched lazily to wrap around his neck as you clung tightly to him, desperate to keep him close.
âThatâs my girl,â he whispered, lips brushing against the top of your shoulder. âAll you have to do is let me put my babe in you, sweet Lamb. Iâll do all the work.â
Sanemi let his body settle against you, his weight holding your legs in place, locked tightly against your chest. His movements caused a slight dribble of his seed to escape over where the two of you remained joined, and you whined, mournful of its loss, but he was quick to soothe you. âShh, Lamb, donât worry,â he began slowly rolling his hips into yours, his cock still hard. âWhatever is lost, I will replace double.â True to his word, the Huntsman began to fuck his seed right back into your cunt before he gifted you yet another load. By the end of the hour, you were hardly able to keep your eyes open, your belly slightly bloated from how thoroughly heâd filled you again and again.
Sanemi rolled you atop him, allowing you to use his body as your bed. His hands smoothed down your sides until he could grip under your knees, and he pulled your legs up until they rested on either side of his waist. You squirmed slightly against him, your cunt still pulsing around his cock with the remnants of your final climax. You felt Sanemi smile against your forehead as he pressed a sweet kiss against your brow. âYouâll have to keep me warm for the night, Lamb.â His thumbs stroked small circles against the side of your thighs. âSince we donât have my knot to keep all of me in you.â
âYou canât knot at will?â You settled against his chest, hips finally relaxing in your new position. Your eyes fluttered as sleep crept in, and you were too exhausted to try and move anymore.
âOnly during my heats and the full moon,â Sanemi murmured. His arms wrapped around you, his warmth and mass a better blanket than even the soft furs piled atop your shared bed. âSpeaking of which, there is a full moon in only five daysâ time.âÂ
You nodded, not bothering to stifle the yawn that slipped past your lips. âSo you shall knot me again?â
âAye, my sweet love,â he pressed a kiss into the top of your head. âThough I donât need it to fuck you full of my pups, but it certainly helps in that endeavor.â His hold around you tightened. âYou shall make the most beautiful mother,â he whispered, his voice pure honey.Â
You burrowed harder into his chest, sighing as you let the comforting beat of his heart lull you closer to sleep. Before the sweet promise of temporary oblivion pulled you below its waves, you heard Sanemiâs fading voice speak once more.
âOur children will know they exist not because of any mating bond, but because their father loves their mother more than anything in this world.â His promise settled over you like the warmest of blankets, and you let the world around you disappear until you fell into dreams of flowers the color of your Huntsmanâs eyes, perfumed with the scent of pine and woodsmoke; for even the deepest part of your subconscious recognized him as your home.
And so, you dreamed of him.
--
Your knowledge of your new home expanded as the Winter Solstice drew nearer. While Sanemi often spent the majority of the dwindling daylight patrolling along the borders of their land, he took great care to devote every bit of his free time to you. On a few occasions, he brought you on patrol with him, allowing you to ride upon his back as he flew through the Wood. The Wolvesâ territory was massive; the valley of the dens resided in the exact middle of the territory. The extent of the bounds of the land was wider than it was long, and youâd gone slack jawed when Sanemi informed you that it took him and his pack almost an hour to run between the Eastern and Western borders, even fully shifted. When you werenât accompanying Sanemi on his patrol duties, or spending time with Shinobu in her den, learning how to extract oils from certain herbs to make more potent medications, you roamed the area surrounding the dens on your own. You didnât feel quite so confident as to risk venturing beyond the cliffside ravine near the lip of the Netherwood, but the presence of your cloak was enough to keep you comfortable as you searched for other plant life youâd learned about from reading one of Shinobuâs many, heavy bound texts.
Though, you supposed you couldnât really say you were alone on such excursions; your ever-present shadow continued to lurk just out of sight. You wouldnât have known he was still trailing after you at all, had you not been able to spy the fluttering edge of his violet traveling cloak from your periphery every time you made a sudden turn or whipped around, desperately hoping to catch him before he could duck behind the nearest tree or boulder.Â
You knelt upon the frozen earth and pulled a small pair of gardening shears from the folds of your cloak. âGenya?â you called, unable to suppress the small smile forming on your lips. âYou can come closer, you know. I wonât bite.â
There was no answer. With a grunt of frustration, you returned to your task, cheeks heating in slight embarrassment at the way the boy continued to keep distance from you like you were some plague. In your exasperation, you wrenched your shears through a bough of witch hazel with more force than was likely necessary, nearly nicking your finger against the bladeâs sharp edge. A sudden idea took form. You shifted where you knelt, keeping your back turned firmly toward where you thought Genya was lurking. Your hands concealed from view, you feigned a struggle with severing another branch from the bush. After a moment, you let the shears slip easily from your grip, sending them scuttling across the earth, and you let loose a mock-groan of frustration. You threw a glance back over your shoulder, pretending to search the trees. âI see you standing there,â you called. Wonât you please join me? Silence followed for a moment until a face slowly peeked out from behind a tree only a few yards away. Youâll have to keep needling him, Sanemi had warned you. He has always had an interest in forestry and plants. You smiled to yourself. âIâd appreciate some help cutting these branches,â you gestured to the small witch hazel bush. âI fear I might not have the strength to cut the branches on my own.â
A lie, but an effective one. Timidly, Genya shuffled out from his hiding spot behind the thick bark of an old, decaying tree and shuffled toward you, arms crossed tightly over his chest and his eyes cast downward. âAlright,â he murmured, his voice soft enough to be swallowed by the wind.
Despite the surge of triumphant delight that rocked through you, you kept your features neutral, for fear of running the boy off. âHere,â you pulled a spare pair of pruning shears free from the folds of your skirt and handed them to the young Wolf. âIâve been hoping you would join me.â
Genya gingerly plucked the blade free from your fingers. He kept his face turned down toward the ground, in valiant effort to conceal the brilliant blush coloring his cheeks.
You smirked. The boy couldnât conceal the fuschia hue coloring the tips of his ears, exposed by the unique cut of his hair. Your gloat, however, was short lived, as Genya mumbled something you hadnât the dimmest hope of being able to discern. But you would not give in so easily. âYouâll have to forgive me,â you said lightly. âMy hearing isnât as sharp as a Wolfâs.â
The young Wolf nearly dropped his shears. âI â I uh ââ he sputtered, fumbling to re-secure his grip on the gardening tool. âI s-said, I thought youâd â youâd w-want â that youâd need someone to watch out for you.â
You kept your focus on the task at hand, sawing through the thick branches of the witch hazel bush and tossing your bounty to the side to be stripped once youâd gathered enough. âI appreciate it -- Iâve wanted company while gathering for Shinobu for some time.â
Genyaâs blush did not fade, not even as you walked him through the process of stripping the witch hazel leaves, showing him how to tell the good branches from the bad, and how to best avoid any nicks from the shears if they slipped against the reedy bark of the branch wood. A silence settled over the pair of you as you worked, though it did not bother you. Youâd grown used to soloing this task, after all, and you were rather grateful for the young Wolfâs presence by your side, even if he remained silent. âY-youâre not afraid,â Genyaâs gruff voice cut through the frosty winter air like a blade. You turned to him, curious. âOf us, I mean,â he said quickly, busying himself with stripping a branch of witch hazel with the sharp edge of his shears. âYouâre human and you donât seem frightened.â
You turned your attention back to the branches piled before you, hands resuming their task of sorting the good branches from the bad. âIâve seen far worse than a few Wolves since entering the Netherwood,â you said dryly. âYour pack is perhaps the least frightening thing around for miles.â
Out of the corner of your eye, you could see Genya purse his lips. âYou werenât afraid of Aniki â brother?â
âHow do you mean?â
âIn the pastâŠother humans tended to be afraid of him -- his scars.â He hastily added. âSometimes theyâd even turn away his aid.â Genyaâs eyes flickered shyly to you. âWere you? Frightened by him?â
âOf Sanemi?â you repeated with an airy laugh. You sat back on your haunches and hummed in thought, considering.
âYes and no,â you decided after a moment. âI was frightened when I first saw him â but not because of him.â You dropped a few stripped branches into your basket and brushed the dirt from your hands. âBy the time I found Sanemi, Iâd been on the run for more than a day. I imagine I would have been startled by my own shadow, had I been able to see it.â
Genya said nothing, but it was clear he clung onto every word you spoke given the way his hands stilled, halting his task.
âIt became clear rather quickly that he truly meant to help me,â you continued, smiling softly. âSo no, I was not afraid of him; in fact, I found him rather vexatious at first.â You shot Genya a knowing wink. âYour brother can be rather aloof when he desires it. He was quite good at avoiding my efforts to make conversation.â You thought for a moment, and then laughed quietly under your breath. âThough, if you asked him, Iâm certain heâd tell you he found me just as irksome.Â
The younger Shinazugawa remained silent for a moment, pondering. âMy brother â he really cares for you.â Genyaâs voice was so soft you almost strained to hear him. âIâve never seen him soâŠ,â the boy trailed off, grimacing as he struggled for the word. âSoft, I sâppose. Not until you.â Genyaâs head suddenly snapped to you in wide-eyed alarm. âD-donât tell him I said that. He might bite my head off.â
You smiled as you wrenched another branch free from the witch hazel shrub. âI shall take it to my grave.â
Genya responded to your promise with a soft smile. For an hour, the two of you worked in comfortable silence, interrupted only by the occasional question from him about life in the human village, his curiosity growing with your every reply. Eventually, he began to fidget beside you, his anxiety almost palpable. You were about to suggest returning home, when he suddenly dropped his shears, letting them thud to the earth.âYou said you only came into the Netherwood because you were being pursued,â Genyaâs words tumbled quickly out of his mouth. âIs that person still after you?â
The suddenness of the question â and the unexpected tangle it created in your mind -- took you by surprise. You turned to him and saw your own stunned expression on the young Wolfâs face, as though he, too, was taken aback. Genyaâs blush returned. âF-forgive me â it wasnât my place ââ
âI donât know,â the confession slipped out of your mouth before you could think the better of it. âIâd like to believe heâs given up, but that doesnât align with the Douma I know.â A thin sheen of sweat coated your palms, and absently, you rubbed your hands against your outer skirt. âAnd I also know it would be foolish to believe nearly a month without incident means that I am free from his torment. But I â,â you faltered, head dropping to stare at your hands where they rest in your lap.
Genya shifted uncomfortably beside you. âYou â youâre part of our pack, now.â His voice cracked slightly, but there was a firm conviction to his words. âBrother is strong, and I â I can fight, too. So can Shinobu.â
Slowly, you lifted your eyes to meet the youngâs boyâs. Your heart swelled as you recognized the stern assurance and determination in the boyâs gaze, even in spite of the reddening of his cheeks.
âAnd â and youâre safe here,â he finished somewhat lamely, but the weight of his promise held.
âThank you, Genya,â you said quietly. âTruly, thank you. And thank you for letting me into your pack.â
The boyâs flush nearly matched the purple of his traveling cloak. ââS nothing,â he mumbled, embarrassed once more. His hand reached behind him to rub awkwardly at the back of his neck. ââSides, once Gyomei and âSuri come back, youâll have even more of us looking out for you.â
You gave him a wan smile, unable to bring yourself to admit that was precisely the opposite of what you wanted. The thought that Sanemi and the others would potentially put themselves in harmâs way for your sake was a thorn in your conscience you couldnât seem to shake, and its piercing stab only grew more intense as the days passed.
Genya, thankfully, was oblivious to your inner anguish. âLetâs go, sister,â he shot up, dusting his hands off on his breeches.
You looked up at him in surprise, a soft smile forming on your lips. âSister?â
The boy turned bright red. âWell â youâre Anikiâs â and that makes you â,â
You couldnât stop the laugh building in your chest, thankful for the distraction. âIt is perfectly all right, Genya,â you assured the stuttering young Wolf. âYou can call me sister; I donât mind.â
Genya nodded jerkily, still bright red. His brotherâs influence on his manners, however, was clear, as the boy offered you his arm. Smiling, you looped yours through his, your basket full of witch hazel tucked safely in the crook of your free arm.
âShall we?â You asked, and the pair of you set off back toward the Wolf dens â toward home.
--
You returned to your cabin den before Sanemi and tried to busy yourself by preparing the fire. Since your arrival, youâd filled the Huntsmanâs cupboards with pots and jars stuffed full of herbs and preserved foods for the winter ahead, and you found yourself shuffling them around on their shelves, desperately attempting to let your mind get lost in the task of reorganizing them according to their type of use. Your distractions, however, were unable to temper the restlessness buzzing beneath your skin like a horde of angry hornets, growing more incessant as the minutes trickled ceaselessly by. Eventually, you found yourself standing before the cabinâs main hearth, staring blanky into the fire as it crackled merrily away, filling the room with its cozy, orange glow. Despite its considerable size, you only pulled your shawl tighter around your shoulders, the comforting warmth of the flames unable to chase away the chill that seemed to linger on your skin.
A gust of early winter air dampened the strength of the fire as Sanemi pushed open the heavy oak door to your home, pausing only to quickly shake the snow from his boots before closing it quickly behind him. âI wouldnât mind the winter so much if not for the damn snow,â he grumbled, tugging his cloak over his head and hanging it near the door. When you neither responded nor acknowledged his return, Sanemi turned toward you. âLamb?â The Huntsman crossed the floor of the cabin until he too, stood before the hearth. A gentle hand grazed your shoulder, and his touch startled you from the maze that was your mind.
Your eyes were wide as they lifted to meet his concerned gaze, though some of the tension eased from your shoulders at the sight of your mate standing beside you. âApologies, I just --,â your voice faltered, and Sanemi leaned closer to you, his expression serious. âDo you think Douma will find us?â You asked quietly after a moment. Your hands began to nervously twist the folds of your shawl where you clutched it around your chest. âWill he continue hunting me until the ends of the earth?â
Sanemi shifted forward to take your hands into his own, stilling their fret. âOur land is mostly secured â and even the weakest of our borders hasnât been breached in over a decade, Lamb.â
His thumb moved soothingly over your knuckles. âAnd even if he could manage to track you all the way here, it wouldnât matter. Heâd have to get past several wolves, each of whom is more than dedicated to protecting their own.â One hand moved to cup your cheek, tilting your face towards his. âThat doesnât even begin to touch what I would do to him â what I would do to keep you safe.â
You closed your eyes and leaned into the sturdy warmth of Sanemiâs touch. âAll I want is to be free,â you whispered. âTo live without fear of the shadows lurking over my shoulder.â
The Huntsmanâs eyebrows drew together in confusion. âWhere is this coming from, Lamb? Weâve not had any encounters with those men since before I marked you.â
 âI donât know,â you admitted with a frown, your hand running nervously through your hair. âBut I feel an unease that I canât shake. It is as though something is pulling at me, trying to get my attention â like I need to be on guard.âYou pursed your lips. âDouma has never struck me as the type to give up the chase. I half expect to see him waltzing through the trees with a small army of his sycophants, ready to string me up.â
Sanemiâs eyes were full of concern as you rambled on, anxiety bubbling into panic in your stomach. âThat I might bring that sort of chaos right to your door â that I might threaten your pack â I cannot bear it, Sanemi.â
âMy love, you have nothing ââ
âHe skinned my grandmother alive, Sanemi.â You whispered. âA helpless old woman, and he treated her like an animal. What do you think he would do if he were to capture you? Your brother?â The rate of your breathing increased until you were nearly panting, struggling to get enough air into your lungs. âWhat if he harms you, harms your family? What if ââ
âY/N, shh,â your anxious chatter was silenced as Sanemi shot to cup you by the back of your skull and pull you in. The hand splayed across the back of your head tucked you tightly under his chin, his other arm winding to curl around your waist and crush you against his solid form. His fingers rubbed soothingly against your scalp. âI will not let anything happen to you, Lamb.â His lips whispered against your hair. âIâll protect you, I swear it.â It was difficult not to melt within the comforting cage created by his arms as he cradled you close. Your cheek rested against the warm skin of his chest, and beneath you could feel the steady beat of his heart. âMy body is yours. My life is yours. There is nothing I wouldnât do â nothing I wouldnât become, if it meant keeping you safe.â
You shook your head. âDonât say that,â your arms wrapped around his hips and squeezed, holding him close. âYour curse â your humanity is far more important.â
Sanemi gently pulled your head back and tilted your face up, his thumb smoothing over your cheek. âNo, Lamb. You misunderstand.â His thumb dropped down to run over your bottom lip. âYou are my humanity.â He dipped low to brush a sweet kiss against your lips before he tucked you back against his chest, his hand smoothing over the back of your head. âSo long as we are together, no harm will come to us â any of us.â
Your eyes fluttered shut as you let yourself melt in his embrace, the steady beat of his heart beneath your ear more soothing than any lullaby. You wanted to protest; you wanted to tell him that Douma had garnered a reputation in your village for being merciless in his pursuits. After all, after his first two wives disappeared, the family of the third had tried desperately to get their daughter out of her engagement once the proposal arrived; theyâd even begged the Village Head for an official decree banning the marriage, offering to pay handsomely in exchange for their daughter remaining unbound. It hadnât mattered; Douma forced the wedding within the week, and by the time the sun rose the next morning, rumors of her disappearance were already snaking their way through the markets. Barely a month later, Kotoha had received her proposal.
But you wanted to believe Sanemi; you wanted to believe it had been enough, that his mating mark had altered your scent until you were nearly untraceable, and that you would be spending your days here, with your Wolf, happy and free. You wanted it more than youâd ever wanted anything. So, you burrowed further against Sanemiâs sturdy warmth, and you let his scent â pine and something spicy and smoky â envelope your senses and chase all thoughts of the Village Worship leader from your mind.
And you let yourself believe him.
ââ
Your restlessness eased considerably over the following days until Doumaâs lingering phantom faded to the back of your mind, barely more than an easily disregarded whisper. Rather, your newfound bond with Genya occupied a great deal of attention, the boy now a constant presence by your side during the day. Despite his rather fearsome appearance, the young Wolf followed you around like an over-eager puppy, jumping to volunteer to carry your basket once youâd sufficiently loaded it with materials to replenish Shinobuâs stock of medicinal herbs and your own cupboard. You didnât mind; Kotoha had been the closest thing youâd had to a sibling, and his shy kindness and readiness to help in whatever way he could started to fill the void sheâd left behind. You grew closer with Shinobu as well, the young Shifter grateful for the presence of another woman. Sheâd even gifted you with a few new skirts and decorated outercorsets from her closet, waving off your protest over accepting the clothing without payment. As it turned out, sheâd purchased them for Mitsuri, but her mate, like most Nymphs, preferred to wear less, no matter the season. As fortune would have it, your height was close to that of the Naiadâs, and the garments fit comfortably.
Above all, your love for Sanemi only deepened with each passing day. As much as you found yourself longing for the silkiness of his touch and the warmth of his smile whenever he was away, by far, the best part of your day was when he returned home. The moment he stepped past the threshold of your shared cabin, his arms would find you, and then lips, as he held you like the most precious thing to ever walk the earth.
He'd grown even clingier than usual as the Solstice approached. One particular evening had seen him hastily entering the cabin, barely discarding his cloak and axe before heâd hurriedly crossed the floor and swept you into his arms, crushing you against him. You chalked it up to the impending change in the lunar cycle, as youâd felt a similar need to be near to him as both the Winter Solstice and full moon loomed near. But that morning, he rose even earlier than usual, setting out well before the first rays of dawn had begun to peek over the horizon. Ever the gentleman, heâd still taken the time to properly fill you before departing, leaving you half-asleep but content with his warmth between your legs and a gentle kiss against your brow. Itt was well past dark when he returned. Youâd been standing over the clay stove, heating water to make tea, when the front door to the den pushed open, an icy gust of early winter air rushing past him before he latched it shut. You called out your greeting, eyes focused on grinding up a portion of peppermint leaves to steep. Even with your back turned to him, you could feel the weight of Sanemiâs stare as he silently crossed the cabin floor to you, your heart skipping as the burning heat of his body drew nearer. A pair of muscled, scarred arms gently encircled your waist from behind, tugging you back against his solid form. Your eyes fluttered shut for a moment as you savored the way his scent â woodsy and just a little spicy â enveloped your senses, washing over you until your body thrummed with want for him.
âThere is something we should discuss,â he murmured quietly, his lips tickling the side of your neck as he skimmed his mouth across your skin. His hands smoothed over your belly and hips in unhurried, repeated strokes. From the growing bulge that had begun to dig into your backside, you could guess what discussions the Huntsman had in mind.
Your head thudded back against his pectoral, eyes fighting a losing battle against rolling up into your head at the intoxicating feel of his touch. âIâm listening.â
âI told you once before that I would shift while claiming you â fully,â Sanemiâs breath was hot as he exhaled against your neck, his body warm and tight where it pressed into every curve of yours. âAnd with each day that passes, I find it more and more difficult to restrain myself from doing so.â
Your stomach fluttered. You turned in his embrace and peered up at him through half-lidded eyes. âI donât want you restrained.â
The Huntsman groaned as he dipped his head lower to trail his nose along your neck. âYou say such dangerous things, Lamb.â
âDo you want to take me as a wolf, Sanemi?â
A beat of silence followed. âIt is a rite of sorts,â he said carefully, his eyes tracking your face for your reaction. âFor wolves to mount their mates in their natural form. It is meant to be the ultimate expression of the bond.â
âAnd,â he added, and his cheeks turned slightly pink. âKnotting as a wolfâŠtends to have more success in terms of siring pups.â
A luscious burn spread down your body from your mating mark at the implication of his words. With slight amusement, you realized your bond was reacting to his desires â to breed his mate â and that you wanted nothing more than to help assuage his most primal urge. You brushed a kiss against his chest, right over his thundering heart. âThen I am ready,â you said, simply. âYou know what I desire â take me; claim me again.â
Sanemiâs lips pressed hard against the top of your head, and he sighed deeply as he inhaled your scent. You took it as an assent to your offer. âHow should we start?â You whispered, tilting your head up to search his eyes. You ran your hands up and down the steely length of his forearms in an effort to sooth bothe his nerves and your own. âShall we begin as we did in the cave?â
Sanemiâs grip around your waist tightened. âIt wonât be here, Lamb,â he nuzzled his nose against yours. âThis space,â he nodded to the cozy den around you. âIs too small for me to shift fully.â
âAnd I do not want to risk breaking anything,â he added sheepishly after a moment.
The weight of his promise â that Sanemi would indeed assume his full Wolf form while claiming you, taking that final step in making you utterly and indelibly his â sent heat flaring through your veins. But the excitement tittering within you was tempered as you considered the implication of his words. âThen â will you not take me tonight?â You fought the frown threatening to betray your rising disappointment.
Sanemiâs hand smoothed over your hair. âNo, Lamb â this can happen now,â and his words made your thighs clench together. âTonight will be a full moon. I have already made arrangements; we just have to travel a little way. But â are you sure youâre ready? I will not ask anything of you that you donât want.â
You stretched up on your toes until only a breath separated your lips. âI want you, Wolf.â Your whisper made Sanemiâs eyes darken. âI want you in every sense of the word.â
Your hand crept up the unbuttoned collar of his tunic, savoring the warm, scar-crossed skin of his chest. Sanemiâs eyes fluttered under the silkiness of your touch. âLamb ââ
âIâm yours,â you breathed, leaning in to just barely graze your lips against his. âUtterly and completely yours.â
The Huntsmanâs eyes remained shut for a moment longer as he exhaled once, long and slow. Your belly flipped at the hoary silvery glow beginning to tint the plum of his eyes when he opened them once more, pinning you with the intensity of his gaze.
âLook at me,â Sanemi caught your jaw in his hand, his grip gentle and firm. âAnd listen well.â
The quiet command stilled you and hitched the breath in your throat. His stare was formidable; at times, the vehemence of his gaze made you want to squirm, to curl in on yourself and hide. No one had ever looked at you with the same fiery zeal as Sanemi did. Often, you thought he might be looking straight through you, choosing instead to peer directly into your soul to assess you and everything you were. Yet, despite it all, you would happily peel yourself back, flesh and bone, and bare yourself to him if he asked. For if he were to examine your heart, he would see only his reflection, and he would know it belonged to him.
The way the Huntsmanâs pupils dilated made you think he had, given how his hold on you tightened. âIf at any time tonight things becomeâŠoverwhelming,â Sanemi swallowed hard. âOr if you feel any pain or discomfort â and I mean any,â he stressed as your lips parted in protest. âYou must tell me at once.â
âIt wonât,â you insisted. âI will be fine ââ
The sound of your name on the Huntsmanâs lips made you fall silent. âIf it gets to be too much, tell me to stop and I will. I swear it.â
There was an urgency in his eyes that made you pause. He was conflicted; torn between his desire for you and his fear of causing you harm. Your eyes softened, and your hand found his cheek, Sanemi leaning into the warmth of your touch. âI will.â You promised, and you meant it. For as much as it was clear Sanemi could not stomach the thought of causing you pain, you also could not fathom being the cause of his.
The Wolf nodded and swallowed hard. âThen come with me.â
--
The Solstice arrived and with it, had brought the full force of winter to the Netherwood. The cold was so sharp it made your lungs burn with every step, and the generous layer of snow coating the ground slowed your pace. Above you, the moon hung fat and silver in the sky, its light reflecting off the pristine white the thick blanket of white which had settled over the land, bright enough that you easily could have seen the land around you even without the flickering lantern Sanemi held out before you. With his free hand wrapped securely around yours, the Huntsman led you away from the small clusters of cabins and deeper into the Wood, the whipporwills and the jays having long since retired for the night.
On and on you walked alongside the brook that ran through the valley, until you drew upon the mouth of the stream, which widened into a small, rushing creek. There, you split away from the water, Sanemi guiding you into a line of evergreens packed tighter together than the small groves that separated the dens. You traveled until the dim lights from Shinobuâs and Genyaâs homes faded, the darknes of the small pocket swallowing you whole. Sanemiâs thumb stroked soothingly over your knuckles as you trekked deeper into the brush, until the pair of you came upon a small clearing among a circle of trees.
On one side of the clearing â no more than three or four lengths across â crackled a small fire, just large enough that you could feel its warmth from where you stood. Lining the outer rim of the dell was an assortment of candles, all mismatched and of varying height, but each lit and flickering gently in the cold winter air. The effect of the candles bathed the clearing in a soft, warm glow, carving out a small sanctuary in the middle of the shadowy and mysterious Wood. Your eyes were drawn to the center of the clearing. There was a small divot, where snow had been gathered and pushed to the sides, revealing the frozen ground below. The ground, however, had been covered, as Sanemi had assembled a pile of clean furs, piles one on top of the other to form a soft bed.A nest; almost identical to the one heâd made in the cave den before his heat.
Romantic; that was the only word you could conjure to adequately describe the cozy display before you. It was utterly romantic. âIs this what you were doing today?â You dared not speak above a whisper, for fear of disturbing the intimate ambience so carefully curated by your mate. âWere you preparing this?â
âAye,â Sanemi said hoarsely. âI wanted you to be comfortable â as comfortable as possible.â
âIt is beautiful, Sanemi,â you pushed your chest against his lower abdomen, your arms winding around his waist as you peered up at him through your eyelashes.
The Huntsmanâs hand caressed your cheek before it tilted your head up. Sanemi expressed his gratitude at your praise not with his words, but with his lips as he crushed you gently to him. You remained locked together for a while, lips moving slowly together in a sweet kiss that starkly contrasted with what you knew was about to unfold.
He broke your kiss with a soft moan, his hand cupping the back of your neck to keep you close. Sanemiâs eyes bore heavily into yours, neither one of you daring to blink as his fingers trailed lightly from your shoulders to the front stays of your corset. Though he did not speak, you could see the question brimming in his eyes, and your chin dipped down in an almost imperceptible nod. The Huntsman held your gaze as his hands made quick work of the corsetâs laces before he laid the garment carefully to the side. Sanemi then lifted your blouse over your head, his eyes never straying from yours even as your upper torso became exposed, your nipples pebbling against the bite of the winter air. The heady connection of your stare remained strong, even as he knelt to the ground before you, his warm, broad hands dragging down the chilled skin of your chest and midriff. You felt your cheeks flush as Sanemiâs lithe fingers began to work the buttons securing your skirts around your waist. The fabric loosened and your mate tugged each skirt down your hips, his mouth pressing hotly against the exposed skin just below your belly button, all while keeping his eyes locked with yours. His hands then found the tops of your wool stockings where they were secured around the middle of your thighs, and he rolled them down, one by one.
Arousal flared between your legs and you did not miss the way his eyes darkened almost to black as he drank you in, fully bare before him in that snowy enclosure. He rose slowly to full height until he towered over you once more, his eyes still burning into yours. A finger ghosted along your cheekbone. âGo lay down on the nest,â his voice was as soft as the caress against your face. âAnd open your legs.â
You obeyed his command without a word, lowering yourself to the bed of furs gathered on the ground. You propped yourself up on your elbows and your eyes remained fixed on Sanemiâs as you drew your knees up slightly before letting your legs fall open, baring yourself to him.
The fire in Sanemiâs eyes was nothing short of ravenous. âTouch yourself, Lamb,â he ordered as his hands rose to the laces on his breeches. âTouch yourself as I would.â
Beginning at your collarbone, you lightly dragged your right hand down the length of your body, pausing at one of your breasts to circle it, teasingly. Sanemiâs knuckles tightened around the fastenings of his trousers as you pinched your nipple between your fingers and cried out, another rush of wetness surging between your thighs under the weight of his dark stare. His breeches loosened, Sanemi grabbed a fistful of his tunic and hauled it over his head, exposing his mouthwateringly chiseled form. You fought the urge to clamp your thighs together at the sight of his body, so hard yet so warm, and so very capable of setting every nerve in your body aflame with want.
But your Wolf had given you an order, and you were desperate to show him how good â how obedient â his mate could be. And so, your hand continued its descent down your body, skirting from hipbone to hipbone before you dipped between your thighs â right where you knew he wanted. Your breath caught in your throat at the first brush of your fingers against your slit, already hypersensitive from the anticipation bubbling hotly within you. You were soaked â your arousal was already leaking forth, dampening your outer folds. With a shaky moan, your fingers spread wide the lips of your core, exposing your need. You gathered your wetness and spread it around your entrance, your legs trembling. Sanemiâs eyes were dark and full of want as he regarded you, bare before him and waiting.
Your lower lip quivered. âSanemi.â
Instantly, he pounced, mouth moving feverishly against yours as he covered your body with his. His hands roamed every inch of your skin, grabbing and massaging whatever part of you he could reach, as though he could consume you simply through his touch. âI promise I will be good to you,â he murmured between desperate kisses. âI will be so good to you, little Lamb.â Sanemi pulled roughly away from you, breath fast and hard. âBut I need to prepare you, first.â
You pushed your hips up against his with a whine. Boldly, your fingers latched around his wrist and tugged his hand between your thighs, pressing it flush against your folds, already slick with your desire.
The Huntsman could not stop his fingers from dipping between your slit, the action pure muscle memory. âIâm ready now,â you insisted.
Sanemi groaned as your honey coated his digits. His calloused yet gentle fingers spread your wetness around, swirling your sensitive bead before dipping lower, bringing it to your aching entrance. He mouthed at your breast, sucking a pert nipple between his lips to stifle another rumbling moan. âYouâre ready to take me as I am now â but not yet as a Wolf,â his voice was strained. A single finger dipped inside your entrance and you moaned, your head falling back against the furs. âDo you trust me, Lamb?â
How could you not? How could you do anything but trust him, when he added a second finger inside you to join the first, his digits steadily pumping into you while curling and brushing against that sweet spot that only your precious Huntsman knew how to find?
Sanemi slowed the pace of his hand. âI need to hear you speak, sweetling.â
âYes!â You gasped, hips rotating wantonly as you tried to stimulate yourself against him. âI trust you â just please, donât stop ââ
Your pleas broke off with a whine as Sanemi resumed the measured thrusts of his hand into your core. His thumb swirled and pressed against your nub, and before long, your thighs trembled and ached as your first climax drew near. When the Huntsman added a third finger, you swore, your back arching off the nest as your high washed over you, Sanemiâs name a fervid oath on your lips. The fourth finger had you crying out in both overstimulated pleasure tinged by the sweetest pain. Tears gathered in the corner of your eyes as Sanemi spread his fingers wide inside you, touching parts of you you hadnât known could be reached.
The sight of you writhing beneath him made the bulge between his legs grow painfully hard, his cock straining against his breeches. If he did not avail himself of the relief of your sweet body soon, he would end up soiling yet another pair of his pants.
Regretfully, Sanemi removed his thumb from your swollen clit. He dragged it down the center of your core until it reached your entrance, where he pressed down just above your opening and waited. Your eyes flew open at his signal. You looked down your body at him in alarm, your moans turning to squeaks the more Sanemiâs hand continued to work inside you. The Huntsman struggled to control his breathing as he looked over your disheveled appearance. Your cheeks were dark, and tendrils of your hair stuck to the edges of your temples and against your neck, the skin there sweat dampened and flushed. A gush of fluid surged from between your thighs as you realized he was waiting for your permission. Your teeth sank into your bottom lip. âI-I donât know if I can ââ you started but Sanemi was quick to soothe.
âJust one more finger, Lamb, I promise,â he panted. âYou can take it, sweet girl, I know you can.â
Your stomach clenched tightly but you nodded anyways, your heart pounding at the way his eyes darkened at your assent. Your chest was heaving as you felt the last of Sanemiâs digits prod your entrance, the others deep within your silken heat and still working you open. You could do it, you chanted to yourself. You had to do it â or else heâd stop, and you thought youâd die if he did. There was a slight pressure that made you wince, and then pleasure; warm, rolling pleasure, that made you spread your legs wider. âThatâs my good girl,â Sanemi murmured, eyes locked on your face, darkening at the way your mouth fell open in a silent scream.
The Huntsman began to pump away, his fingers moving to massage and stretch your inner muscles. For a moment, even through the thick fog of pleasured bliss clouding your mind thanks to the Wolfâs ministrations, you were confused as to how he was able stroke different parts of your inner walls at the same time, rather than focusing on one or two spots as he normally did. You felt two fingers curl up, stroking that spot near the top of your groin that made you drool, while the other two continued to push deeper.
It struck you then that the Wolf had his entire hand buried deep inside your core.
âYouâre doing so well, sweetling,â Sanemiâs other hand closed around your breast, squeezing softly. His fingers closed around your nipple, pinching it in time with the movements of the hand between your legs. He smirked at your needy whine, your hips churning desperately against his hand which was buried to the wrist inside your aching heat. âYouâll be able to take me soon, precious Lamb, I promise.â The Huntsman covered your body with his own, allowing his wrist to settle against your neglected pearl. You cried out as he began to press it into the apex between your thighs, the stimulation jolting your hips into movement of their own accord. Mind disconnected from your body, you ground against the ridges of his wrist, and soon, you felt the familiar coil of release begin to tighten in your belly once more. âThatâs it, darling,â he praised. âLook at you, working so hard to get yourself ready for your Wolf.â
His approval only spurned you to move faster, your hips wantonly gyrating against him. Sanemi dropped his head to your breast, sucking your nipple between his teeth. He swore as he felt you clench tighter around his hand, your climax quickly approaching. He pumped harder into you. âCan you take this Wolfâs knot, Lamb?â He cooed, unable to stop pride from swelling in his chest at the eagerness with which you nodded, pitiful whimpers tumbling from your lips. âWill you let this Wolf fuck you full of his seed? Keep you warm and happy?â
Sanemi knew you needed only a gentle push before you would topple over the edge. âYouâre going to let me put a babe in your belly,â Sanemi twisted his hand at the exact moment he felt your muscles seize around him. âYouâre going to let me fuck an entire litter into you, arenât you sweet girl?â
That did it.
With a guttural scream you came apart, your back arcing sharply away from the furs below you with the force of your climax as Sanemi continued to pump his hand into you, teeth gritting as your velvet head closed around him like a vice. The Huntsman praised you as the thrashing waves of your pleasure quieted to soft tremors, until you sank back against the nest, your limbs liquified and your brain close to melting through your ears. âThatâs it, sweetling,â he murmured as he slowly withdrew his hand from your fluttering, aching core, finger by finger. âNow I know youâll be able to handle me.â
You stretched out blindly towards him, fingers curling in the air as you beckoned him to cover you, to sear his skin into yours. âI need you,â you cried. âI need you, Sanemi. Please.â
His hands tore his trousers from his legs and carelessly tossed them to the side. At the first sight of his cock, thick and hard, you cried out again, your mark burning with the ferocity of his need and yours. Your eyes dragged over the shape of his length, snagging on his tip, already an angry red and leaking. A new desire flared to life in your belly, different from that which you usually felt when you wanted your mate to hold your legs open and fuck you until you couldnât recall any name but his. Rather, the urge now spurring you to sit up from the nest and crawl towards him, was one born from the overwhelming need to make as much of a mess of him as he often did to you.Â
He watched, bewildered as you crept over the furs to him, before raising yourself into a kneel. Perched delicately on your knees before him, you leaned forward and experimentally pressed your lips against the leaking head of his hardened member. Sanemiâs reaction was instant, punctuated by a sharp hiss of your name as his hips jolted reflexively toward you.
You paused and peered up at him with wide eyes. âIs â is that okay?â
âYes, Lamb,â his reply was strained, his muscles taught and rigid. âIt is more than okay.â
You hummed, bringing your lips back against his length, and the vibrations of your mouth made the Wolf above you whimper. One hand flew to the side of your head, his fingers lightly tugging insistently at your hair.
âI might start shifting ââ he panted, barely suppressing another moan as you parted your lips around his twitching cockhead and flicked out your tongue. âInto my hybrid f-form â fuck.â
His warning was cut off as you opened your mouth, taking in the top quarter of his cock. It was difficult to keep your eyes glued to his face as you began to move, the sounds falling steadily from his mouth your only guide apart from pure instinct. You tried to bob your head, but your movements felt slightly awkward, and your stiffened jaw made it difficult to work more of him into the wet heat of your mouth. The Huntsmanâs hand dropped from its hold on your hair, with the other, he gently gripped you on either side of your neck. You halted the movements of your mouth and turned your eyes up to meet his blazing stare. He swore softly. âEase your jaw,â his voice was rougher than gravel, but his fingers were light as they massaged the sides of your neck. Against the soothing circles he worked into your neck, your jaw loosened. âThere you go,â he murmured, his hands lifting to brace on either side of your head. His fingers threaded through your hair. âThatâs my girl.â
To your relief, you found it easier to hold him in your mouth and you resumed the bobbing movements of your head. Your confidence mounted with every stroke, and boldly, you allowed your tongue to flex against the underside of his length.
It was the right thing to do; Sanemiâs grip on your hair tightened, but his hips jerked against you, a stilted moan of your name falling from his lips. âBeautiful,â he panted, his hips softly rocking against your movements as he pushed his cock deeper and deeper into your mouth. âYou are utterly beautiful.â
It was messy, but you found that you didnât mind the way your saliva slipped down your chin and dripped to your lap; you relished the way you steadily pushed the Huntsman closer and closer to the edge of his restraint, his muscles rippling as he tensed beneath your ministrations.
The first transformation happened more seamlessly than it did that first time in the cave. One moment, Sanemi was standing above you, his head thrown back as deep, wanton moans reverberated from his chest in time with every stroke of your tongue against his rigid length. The next, you felt him shudder, and the cock sliding in and out of your mouth began to thicken, complicating your ability to keep your cheeks hollowed around him.
A gentle brush of human fingers tipped with sharp, beastly claws through your hair was your only signal that the partial shift was complete. Slowly, you slid him out of your mouth with a wet pop! and sat back on your knees, face tilted up so you could study him in the moonlight.
Half-transformed, Sanemi was equal parts intimidating and beautiful. Youâd thought that heâd grown somewhat when he partially shifted in the cave; now that you could see him better, you could tell exactly the ways in which his half transformation altered the body youâd come to know well.
The change in his eyes from lilac to silver, and the elongation of his fangs and ears were all familiar to you; it was the change in his manhood that was new. It stood straight up, nearly flush against his abdomen. It had grown longer and thicker than normal, his engorged tip bulbous and red as it smeared beads of his seed above his navel. The veins running long its underside were more pronounced, and you swore you could see the blood pulsing through them, making him twitch beneath the heat of your stare. At the base, his knot had already begun to form, and just below it, his balls were larger; fuller. Your mouth went dry at the thought of him emptying into you over and over until everything inside you had been thoroughly coated by his essence. The sight wrought forth a fresh wave of desire from between your legs, strong enough to make you whimper.
The Wolfâs nostrils widened, and the silver of his eyes grew nearly as bright as the moon above as he scented your arousal. âTurn,â he ordered with a deep growl, primal and domineering. âKnees.â
Your mark burned in response and you hastily scooted to the center of the nest to get in position. You laid your head down, cheek coming to rest against the soft furs below you. You fought to keep your breath even as you felt Sanemiâs clawed hands gently take hold of your hips, tilting them up so your backside was high in the air. You shifted your knees further apart in an attempt to balance your weight while still allowing yourself to present the dripping heat of your core for the Wolf at your back. Sanemiâs responding growl was low, his warm hand leaving your hip to slide over your exposed cunt, making you twitch. A single finger swirled appreciatively around your most sensitive spot, and you knew he approved of your new position.Â
You thought that he might taste you, given that he usually could not resist feasting on your cunt when presented the opportunity. But the warmth of his breath disappeared only to be replaced by the blunt press of the tip of his cock against your entrance, already clenching in anticipation. âLamb,â he ran his tip up and down your slit, coating himself with your wetness. âMine.â
Your breath choked out of you as Sanemi swiftly impaled you on his thick cock. Though your limbs initially stiffened in surprise at the suddenness of his movements, you quickly relaxed, your thighs spreading wider as you melted into the furs and sang his name in praise.
In response, Sanemiâs claws dug deeper into your hips as he jerked you harshly back in time with his brutal thrusts. Even during the first night of his heat, he hadnât been this rough; his thrusts hadnât been this bruising, this sharp. But the line between man and beast grew more and more blurred with every snap of his hips. You only wanted more. The clearing was filled with the sounds of Sanemiâs hips slapping roughly against your backside, though the clapping sounds of skin were not enough to drown out the steady stream of the Wolfâs low snarls or your growing cries of pleasure.
âFaster,â you managed to choke out. âFaster, Sanemi.â
His only reply came in the form of a growl, but he obliged. Sanemiâs hips began snapping against you with brutish speed and breathtaking force. Your limbs were steadily turning to mush, quivering and straining to keep you upright as Sanemi mercilessly laid his claim to your cunt. Again and again, the Huntsman slammed you back on his length, pulling desperate cry after cry from your lips, your pleasure rapidly overtaking every perception and coherent thought you possessed. You were ready to be lost amidst the euphoria of his body, resigned to be used for his pleasure and nothing more.
It happened without warning.
One moment, Sanemi was thrusting wildly into you from behind, hips unable to stop the repeated, frenzied push of his engorged cock into your velvet heat; the next, he fell over your back, his hands landing on the ground above your shoulder before he stilled entirely.Your chest heaved from a combination of the exertion from having spent the last several minutes being ruthlessly claimed by your mate and the anticipation over what you knew was about to happen.
There was a great ripple behind you that made you clench around the cock still buried deep inside you, pulling a single cry from your lips. Then you felt a pressure as Sanemiâs length grew thicker within you, pushing against your walls until you felt like you might split in two. You forced your eyes to remain open instead of squeezing shut at the discomfort of Sanemi shifting behind you. You focused instead on the way the joints in his fingers and hands beside you contorted and rippled until there was a burst of white fur, and his human-like hands were replaced by large paws with thick, wickedly curved claws. There was a faint tickle of fur against your back as Sanemi continued to shudder violently above you. The pressure within you increased again and again until you had to push yourself up onto your hands, locking your legs and arms in place to brace against the growing size of the Wolf at your back. With one final, great ripple, Sanemi stilled. Your lungs expanded painfully against your ribs with every heaving gasp, your knuckles white under the strain of your clenched fists, the furs balled tightly against your palms.
Above you was neither the man, nor any hybrid you knew; there was only the Wolf, panting hard as your walls clenched and squeezed around his length, your body trembling violently as it worked to adjust to the sheer size of the beast at your back. It was incredible; the line between excruciating pain and infinite pleasure had been blurred beyond recognition, leaving nothing behind but the distinct sensation of being filled so thoroughly, you did not think there was a crevice in your body that the Wolf did not occupy, filling you an unquenchable thirst for him to move; to fuck; to claim. Your arms were held rigidly straight and your knees were firmly planted beneath you, spread wide to balance your weight, but you trembled nonetheless against the force of his movements. There was nothing you could do but hold yourself up for him, your mouth hanging wide open though no sound other than the occasional, choked grunt left you as you surrendered yourself to him.
The Wolfâs great head dipped down, his nose nudging beneath your arm. Between his jolting ruts, his tongue, long and wide, flicked out and wrapped around your breast. As the wet appendage flexed around your sensitive mound, you sobbed, utterly undone by the intensity with which Sanemi claimed you, yet unable to do anything but desperately push your hips back to meet his frantic, sloppy thrusts. The tip of one, great fang brushed delicately against your nipple and your elbows buckled, the sensation nearly sending you face-first into the nest. Sanemi repeated the movement, and a shriek tore free from the depths of your chest. You sobbed as your fingers sunk into the furs for purchase and you began pushing yourself back desperately to meet him, allowing his cock to seek impossibly deeper into you.
Through the thick haze of pleasured delirium, you felt a familiar tug pulling at something deep within. Your mind was utterly disconnected from your body, so even as your throat continued to burn with your screams, the corners of your mouth tilted up. When the screams echoing through the clearing did not cease, the relentless plunge of the Wolfâs length into your heat faltered. There was another tug, more insistent and slightly desperate that spurred you to open up your mind as much as youâd opened your body for him. For Sanemi.
The moment the bond between the two of you opened wide, you felt him, that sweet, warm presence as golden as the sun. You felt his anxiety, prodding after your welfare, an undercurrent of fear that this was too much and that he was causing you harm.
Every inch of you burned, but not from pain; with a moan, you let him sink into the vast sea of euphoria in which heâd submerged you.
The moment the towering waves of your pleasure washed over him, Sanemi was a goner. With a piercing howl, the Wolf pushed deep into you and erupted, his massive length pulsing as the first of several long, hot ropes of his seed began to fill you. Just one spurt from his twitching length imparted the same amount of his release as heâd expend at the end of his climax while human. In wolf form, however, Sanemi only continued to fill you, and within seconds you could feel it leaking hot and fast over your joint connection and down the back of your thighs.
Your head dropped down, breath hard as Sanemi continued to spurt his release deep within you. Your eyes fluttered against the sensation of being filled, but a strange movement beneath the skin of your abdomen caught your eye. Had you not studied it, you almost would have thought it was nothing more than a trick of shadow from the candles surrounding the nest. Yet, the longer you stared, the more you recognized the shape of the oblong lump in your stomach; the more you could see the faint ridges and curve of the length the Wolf behind you had locked inside. And you could see how it pulsed as Sanemi continued to pump his seed deep into your womb, the rounded head of his cock twitching below your navel. The walls of your core began sporadically fluttering, just as they had that first night youâd spent with him in his den, when heâd mounted you and swore heâd put his child in your womb.
Sanemi snarled softly in your ear, though the tremble in his throat tapered off with a whine as your cunt only pulsed around him more. His great nose pressed against the side of your throat in warning. Through the bond, you felt his command â plea â to stop milking him as though your very existence depended upon it. But you couldnât stop; you couldnât control the way your body vibrated and hummed under the intoxicating strain of him buried so deeply inside of you that your body was no longer your own. The Wolf behind you trembled, adjusting his stance over your body as his release continued. The shift inadvertently jostled his throbbing length against your trembling walls, causing you to clench down harder than you thought possible.
With a growl, the sharp, deadly tips of Sanemiâs teeth pressed against your throat, right against your mark. If heâd been trying to assert dominance by baring his teeth against the vulnerable point on your neck, heâd sorely miscalculated its effect on you. For the threatening prick of his fangs against your skin only made your heat tighten around him, a moan falling from your lips as your head tilted to the side.
Sanemi whined at your display, his hips canting against your rear. The stimulation from his movements distracted you briefly before your eyes flew open at the sharp sting of your entrance being stretched to its limit by something hard and round. You could not hold back the strangled cry which tore from your throat as the Wolfâs heaving knot pushed into your core. The burn of his intrusion quickly abated with Sanemiâs maw against your neck, his tongue lapping soothingly at your mating mark. The stimulation of the brand seared into your skin was followed by a familiar, gooey warmth that replaced any lingering discomfort with mind-numbing pleasure. Before long, some of the stiffness in your limbs eased, and with a moan, you pushed your hips back harder against your mate, silently pleading for Sanemi to push deeper. The Wolf obliged, and with a puckered pop! his knot was locked wholly inside your cunt.
Though your arms vibrated under the strain of holding yourself up, you could not resist the urge to lift one shaking hand to press against your abdomen, to see just how far Sanemi was embedded within your body. Your hand slowly dragged up the oblong shape of his cock that pushed through the skin and muscle of your stomach, the added pressure causing Sanemi to shiver violently above you. His length seemed to continue without end but your palm finally cupped around the thick, bulbous head of his cock, still twitching as it continued to spurt his seed. It was notched just above your navel. You supposed it would be a miracle if your guts hadnât been reduced to a runny pulp by the end of the night.
Exhaustion slammed into you as you held yourself there, bearing a considerable proportion of Sanemiâs weight against your back in addition to the mind-numbing stretch of his cock fully sheathed inside your body. Dimly, you noted the hot slide of his release as it trickled steadily down the backs and insides of your thighs before saturating the furs spread out below. Had your brain not been utterly liquified, you would have laughed; of course, not even Sanemiâs knot was capable of holding in the copious amounts of his seed that had filled your womb until it bloated. Perhaps, had you been a wolf, it would have held, but you were only a human; even your body, it appeared, had its limits.
Gradually, you could feel Sanemiâs knot begin to shrink, though its diminishing size only led to more of his seed continue to froth over where you remained connected. Your arms shook hard as you struggled to hold yourself up, eyes straining to remain open as you felt the Wolfâs member soften inside you. With a grunt, he withdrew himself from your heat, your body convulsing slightly at the loss of his warmth as he pulled out and away. You managed to hold yourself up for another moment before your trembling arms finally gave in, buckling beneath you. You began to fall forward into the furs, unable to catch yourself and too exhausted to care, when a pair of familiar hands caught you.
âIâve got you, my love, Iâve got you,â Sanemi murmured, arms enclosing you in a protective and tender embrace as he pulled you against him.
You lost the battle to hold your eyes open any longer, but you did not yet give into sleep. Your hand reached blindly for your mate, seeking the reassurance of his skin. Sanemi caught your hand easily and brought it to his lips. âYou did so well, Lamb, so fucking well,â he cooed, raining kisses across your fingertips. His other hand rubbed soothingly over the skin of your waist as he continued to mutter words of reverence and praise, his lips kissing every inch of you that he could reach. âTalk to me, my darling girl; are you alright?â His hands seemed to smooth over your body as though searching for anything that might have been amiss. âHave you any pain?â
You shook your head, your neck stiff from exhaustion. âDonât think so,â you managed, still unable to open your eyes. You felt his hand drift between your thighs, his fingers brushing gingerly against your swollen folds. You whimpered and shook your head harder, trying to clench your legs shut in an effort to still his hand, your flesh hyper-sensitive to the point of pain.
âN-no more, Sanemi, no more ââ you cried, hands weakly pushing at his chest.
Sanemi hushed your protests with gentle kisses. âShhh, Lamb, I promise I will not touch you here anymore tonight,â he promised, and you relaxed slightly. âBut I need to ensure youâre not bleeding.â
You nodded jerkily once, teeth clenched tightly together as the Huntsman brushed his fingers against your slit once more before pulling away.
âNot a drop,â he remarked in breathless awe. He wrapped you tight in his embrace, and you gladly melted against his skin. âYou are a wonder.â
âI did well?â You asked shyly, turning to to bury your face against his chest.
You felt him tug a spare fur over your bare form before he lifted you into his arms. âYes, Y/N. You are incredible; youâre absolutely fucking incredible.â
Vaguely, you felt the air around you grow cooler as Sanemi walked the pair of you away from the candlelit clearing and into the dark of the Wood.
âM-moving already?â Your voice was faint and slightly hoarse.
The Huntsman held you tighter against him. âAye, Lamb, it is better if we return home as quickly as we can; that way I can get you safe and warm in our bed.â
You continued to babble nonsensically for the remainder of the trek, and before long, Sanemi was nudging open the door to your cabin den, allowing the warmth from the hearth of the fire to wash over you and chase away any residual chill from frigid winter air outside. The Wolf wasted no time in laying you gently upon the bed, moving quick to cover you with its cozy, thick quilts. You whined as he pulled away briefly to join you beneath the blankets, unable to stand the separation from the comfort of his body for even a moment.
âHush, sweetling; Iâm right here,â he soothed, bringing you back against his torso.
You burrowed your face against the skin of his chest, relying on his steadying warmth to soothe the burgeoning ache in your limbs and between your legs. Sanemiâs arms held you securely against him, his hands large and comforting against the bare expanse of your back.
âRest now, Lamb, youâve more than earned it.â
You mewled against him, arm flopping across his chest so you could tuck yourself in tighter against him. Sleep crept in quickly, washing away the comforting sights of your shared den; your home.
Just before you felt yourself be pulled under its restful waves, a finger brushed against your cheek. âI do not know what I did to deserve having you in my life,â you faintly heard your Huntsman whisper. âBut you are my greatest treasure.â Lips softly brushed against the top of your head. âThank you, Y/N, for being my mate.â
âââââ
Makomo regretted venturing into the Netherwood with every fiber of her being.
But Gyutaro and his beast of a sister, Daki, had made her so angry with their taunting, with their cruel and relentless torment of her young neighbor, that she hadnât been able to resist their bait, as obvious as it was: to venture into the foreboding, cursed Wood and remain there until sundown. That was the price to end their cruelty towards the young Agatsuma boy.
What a stupid dare; what a stupid, stupid dare. And sheâd been just as stupid to accept it. Makomo knew her mother would have her head when she eventually made it back home, especially once she learned why her daughter had chosen to stride purposefully into the forbidden Wood, chin high and eyes determined to shut up the villageâs most odious sibling duo for good. She was, after all, of marrying age, and her mother had lectured her time and again over her behavior. When she wasnât daydreaming, she was busy sparring with Sabito and Giyuu, always quick to grab a wooden stick and join in on their training sessions, happy to lose herself in graceful footwork and the fluidity of her movements as she parried their attacks â all, of course, to her motherâs great exasperation. She often wondered if her mother had fallen into the same trap so many others did â mistaking her outward gentleness and patience for complacency, failing to recognize the restless spirit and fierce determination that ran hot in her daughterâs blood.
A fat lot of good that restlessness had done her, because now, Makomo was lost â utterly and hopelessly lost. Something childish in her wanted to cry as her frustration mounted. It was bad enough that she had no idea which direction would lead her home, but the persistent darkness which plagued the Netherwood was salt in her wounded ego. The lack of sunlight meant it was all the more difficult to track exactly how long sheâd been wandering the trees.
Makomoâs inner anguish was brought to a grinding halt as a twig snapped behind her. Her hand flew to the small knife she kept tucked into the belt around her waist, drawing the blade out and holding it defensively in front of her. âWho goes there?â She fought to keep her voice steady.
A man stepped out from behind a tree, his hands raised in surrender. âPlease forgive me!â He kept a respectful distance from her, though Makomo did not let her guard fall. âI mean no harm!â
She didnât lower her blade. âWho are you?â Makomo demanded, eyes narrowed, scanning him for some indication that he was anything but human. Apart from the unusual color of his eyes â a strange rainbow of colors â he seemed no more than an ordinary man.
He sidestepped her question with one of his own. âAre you lost? The Wood is dangerous for humans, you know. â
Though the concern coloring his words seemed genuine, Makomo took another step back. âThen what are you doing here? Are you not human as well?âÂ
The strange man chuckled, shaking his head. âI cannot imagine what else I would be. But I know my way around here â you seem distressed.â He furrowed his eyebrow. âAnd it is getting dark. Are you sure you arenât lost?â
She grimaced. âPerhaps I am.â
âHow fortuitous our meeting is, then!â The strange man clapped his hands. âYou are lost, but as it so happens, I am a guide. I have a reputation of sorts for guiding lost travelers like you to the other side of the forest.â
Recognition dawned in her eyes and relief flooded over her. âThe Huntsman? Youâre the Huntsman of the Netherwood?â
âThe one and the same,â the manâs rainbow eyes flashed as he sketched a bow. âI am called Douma.â
âIâve heard of you,â Makomo smiled, her shoulders relaxing. âIâve heard you even help those stuck in some remote village on the other side, and protect all those in your charge from that which would prey upon humans.â The girl repocketed her small knife, feeling at ease. âYou truly know the Netherwood that well?â
Douma flashed a dazzling smile that nearly made her blush. âI wouldnât consider myself an expert; I seek only to help those most in need. Any expertise I have is thanks to them, not because of any special skill of mine.â
As handsome as the Huntsman was, his modesty felt like a front, but Makomo was too grateful for having stumbled into another in this godforsaken forest that she looked past it â especially when he knew how to navigate the dangerous, cursed Wood sheâd so foolishly believed she could brave. âI am not trying to get to the other side; I am only trying to return to my village â Urokodaki.â
The Huntsman â Douma â nodded sagely. âI know exactly the place. I am on my way there myself â I shall escort you!â
Makomoâs cheeks heated. âOh no, please â donât feel obligated to take me all the way there. I should be fine if you only show me which direction ââ
âNonsense,â Douma interjected, his expression the portrait of concern. âI canât imagine leaving you alone in any part of the Wood â especially since the route back to Urokodaki requires trekking through rather treacherous territory.â He shuddered, eyes closing against some phantom chill. âTerritory that belongs to wolves â giant, man-eating wolves.â
Ever since she was a young girl, Makomo had prided herself on her courage, but even she could not suppress the icy unease that ran over her at the thought of stumbling onto land belonging to such vicious, terrifying creatures. âVery well,â the girl tried not to let her fear shine through as she smiled wanly at the Huntsman, lest he think her some sort of coward. âI would be very grateful for the escort â and your company.â
Douma answered with a feline grin. âWonderful!â He held his arm out to her, every bit the perfect gentleman. âLetâs be on our way.â
Makomo accepted his offer, though she repressed her slight wince at the coldness of his touch. She shook it off; it was winter, after all, and who knew how long the Huntsman had been out, searching for others just like her.
âWhat an adorable little fox mask you have!â Her escort complimented, eyeing the mask the girl kept strapped to her hip. Makomo relaxed even further, launching into the maskâs backstory as the shadows of the Wood swallowed the pair whole.
----
You spent the next two days confined to your bed.
Thankfully, your mate was more than content to remain naked in bed with you, his taut, muscled body your mattress as you drifted in and out of sleep. Sanemi was more than just attentive; he outright doted upon you as you recovered your strength, more than content to remain tucked in bed with you, apparently just as clingy to you as youâd been with him.
Sometime the day after, a knock had sounded at the door to the den, but Sanemi only replied with a warning snarl, his arms tightening protectively around your nude form. Whomever it had been â likely Genya or Shinobu â left without a word, and Sanemi immediately relaxed, returning his attention to you. He nuzzled against your cheek, just barely exposed where youâd buried your face into the crook of his neck, and he peppered your hairline with kisses, his hands stroking up and down your spine all while he cooed softly in your ear. Though half-asleep, you pressed yourself harder against his torso, fingers running over the ropey, corded muscle of his sides and shoulders, as you drew upon his warmth to ground you. You hadnât imagined you would cling to him any harder than you had since first taking his knot, but it appeared being claimed by Sanemiâs wolf form had reduced you to a hopeless, needy mess.
Fortunately, youâd managed to rise halfway through the third day. You were unquestionably sore, but youâd almost fully regained the ability to move as you normally did, and so, you roused yourself from bed and dressed, eager to spend the afternoon outside after more than two days sequestered in the den.
Sanemi had left shortly before youâd awoken, though he hadnât gone far. Heâd spent the morning at Shinobuâs, both having scented an impending shift in the weather. Sanemi reckoned ice was imminent, which had the effect of complicating the packâs ability to scent out threats, and so heâd met with the Shifter to work out new patrol routes to get you all through the winter. Youâd wanted to spend the last few hours of day pruning holly bushes now that their leaves and berries were at their peak, but you found yourself stuck inside, fighting the urge to tear apart the den piece by piece as you searched for your missing gardening blade. But if you thumped your head against the baseboard of your shared bed one more time, you thought you might scream.
Your teeth ground together as you strained your arm out in front of you again, hand patting blindly across the floorboards beneath your bed for the telltale kiss of metal belongings to your small gardening shears. Behind you, the front door to the den pushed open and a rush of cold winter air spilled into the main room of the cabin. You did not acknowledge your mate as he quickly pushed the door shut behind him and made his way toward the fire roaring in the hearth, eager to get warm. The Huntsmanâs footsteps halted several feet behind you, and the air was silent as Sanemi considered the sight before him: his mate, on all fours on the floor, half-buried beneath the bed and swearing colorfully under her breath.
âAre we stuck?â Even with your back turned toward him, you could sense him shaking with silent laughter.
âNo,â you grumbled, letting out a frustrated grunt as you failed once again to feel out your scissors. âI am perfectly fine, thank you very much.â
âAre you now?â His tone was light and teasing as he moved to the side of the room, near the small table and age-cracked washstand, giving himself a perfect view of your ass where it was held high in the air.
âYes,â you insisted, and with a groan, you withdrew your arm from below the bed. You sat up on your knees and turned your head towards your mate, nose high in the air and indignant. âI rather enjoy searching under beds, you see.â
âI do,â he chuckled softly. âAnd I wonât lie, I quite enjoy the view.â
You shot him a glare as you rose to your feet, brushing your hands off on your skirt. âPerhaps if you werenât so preoccupied undressing me with your eyes, you could have helped me, you dog ââ
âSearching for these?â Sanemi pulled a hand out from behind his back and held it out. There, dangling from his fingers, were your gardening shears, the flickering light of the fire glinting from its blades.
You smiled, shoulders instantly relaxing and your mood improving. âThank you â what are you â?â You reached to take the small tool from your mateâs hand, but he raised his arm high above your head. âWolf.â
âI believe I deserve some payment for my efforts,â Sanemi simpered. âIt took a great deal of energy to lift them off the washstand.â
You frowned, ignoring his slight barb â youâd checked the washstand, you were sure of it. Instead, you stretched up on your toes, reaching your arm to try and snatch them from his fingers, but Sanemi only held his hand higher, that teasing smirk growing wider and wider the more you struggled.
âItâs not safe to hold a blade over someoneâs head,â you groused. You wobbled precariously on your toes in an effort to recover your blade, and you were forced to lean into Sanemi for support. An arm wrapped easily around your middle, locking you tight against him. âAs if Iâd let anything happen to you, Lamb,â his hand drifted teasingly toward your rear before he gripped the supple curve of your backside.
With a frustrating grace, Sanemi flipped the shears in his hand and tossed them, a distant clatter of metal hitting wood signaling theyâd landed somewhere behind him. Before you could protest, the hand heâd used to hold your scissors closed around your wrist, still outstretched in the air, and brought it down, pressing your palm flat against shoulder.
âMuch better.â He began to rock with you from side to side, pulling you into a slow dance set to the music of your own thundering heart at the intensity which slipped into Sanemiâs eyes as he watched you.
A blush spread across your cheeks. âIf you wanted me in your arms so badly, you need only have asked,â you muttered, shyly averting your gaze by resting your cheek against his chest. âI wouldnât have protested.â
A finger curled under your chin and guided your face to tilt back. Sanemiâs lips hovered near your own, pulled into an affectionate smile that made your stomach flip. âBut whereâs the fun in that, Lamb?â His thumb stroked your bottom lip. âI canât help that I enjoy playing with my food.â
âSo I am a meal now, rather than a mate?â You teased. âHow romantic.â
The Huntsman cut off your snark with a quick yet bruising kiss. âYou assume they arenât one and the same, sweetling.â
You waited for him to kiss you again, to reignite the storm of passion and desire between you two that never seemed to ebb but he did not. Instead, the blush on your cheeks deepened as that blazing intensity returned to his gaze once more, Sanemiâs face uncharacteristically serious as his eyes searched yours. His hand cupped the back of your skull, bringing your head back to rest against his chest. âYou are not just a mate to me, you know,â he said quietly, his cheek pressed against the top of your head as you swayed. âI think of you as more than that â far more.â
You rolled your head to peer up at him. âHow can someone be more than a mate?â You frowned. âIs that not the strongest bond there is?â
âYes and no,â Sanemi brushed a lock of your hair behind your ear before his hand settled on the side of your face. âThe bond is strong, thatâs for certain â itâs why I can feel what you feel, why we can communicate without speaking; our souls are connected.â
You turned and nuzzled into his palm, but Sanemiâs thumb dropped to run over your lower lip. âBut the bond is only the base; its strength can waiver, depending on the connection between the matesâ hearts.â The Huntsmanâs other hand found yours and brought it up to rest against his chest, right against the skin exposed by the collar of his tunic. His own hand covered yours keeping it locked over his heart. âAnd what I feel for you here is stronger than any mating mark I could have given you.â
You felt the blush creeping into your cheeks, your fingers smoothing over one of the silvery scars that laced across his chest. âYou already know what I feel for you,â you said shyly after a moment. Your free hand wrapped around the wrist of the hand Sanemi used to cradle your face. Slowly, you lowered it to rest against your bosom, parroting his hold against your hand on him. âEven if youâd never given me the mark, this belongs to you,â you murmured, and he returned your blush, a precious pink stain spreading over his cheeks. âIt will only ever belong to you.â
The hand Sanemi had around yours against his chest tightened as he tugged you closer against him. âI may now be a wolf, but I was born human,â his voice was gravelly, but his eyes were bright. âI remember the significance of human traditions.â
Your breath caught in your throat, your head spinning at the implication of his words.
âIâve already taken you as my mate,â Sanemiâs voice dropped to a hoarse whisper. âBut I long to take you as my wife, if youâll have me.â
Your heart skipped in your chest. Marriage. He was offering marriage. Youâd had him in the most intimate of ways â had allowed him to sear a claim into you for all the world to see, had spread your legs and invited him to take whatever he wanted, to make you his. Youâd begged him to breed you, for Godsâ sake, barely a few days prior.
Yet, he was still asking; giving you the choice to accept him, even if youâd already accepted him in every other way. It was more than Douma had ever done; then again, everything Sanemi was so much more than anything the monstrous worship leader could ever hope to be.
âYes, Huntsman.â You said breathlessly, and the soft warmth that flooded Sanemiâs eyes made your legs turn to jelly. âI will have you as my husband.â
The Huntsmanâs hands cradled your face as his head bent towards you. Softly, his lips met yours in a sweet, chaste kiss. âI will marry you according to the Old Ways,â he whispered between needy, passionate kisses. âAt sunset, on the first night of the next full moon; beneath an old willow tree.â His joy mirrored your own as your hands cupped his cheeks. âOur hands wrapped. My cloak around your shoulders.â
Your heart squeezed tight. You could see it â the very marriage ceremony he described, for it had been the very one done in your village for centuries. An old tradition that could not be replaced, no matter how many grumbling worship leaders tried to insist otherwise. Words were not enough to convey the depth of your gratitude â of your devotion â for the Huntsman whoâd claimed you as his own. Your hand wrapped around the base of his neck and tugged him down, your lips moving against his with a sweet yet consuming passion. There, ensconced in the warm and protective cage of Sanemiâs embrace, you felt a security youâd not felt in a long time. Before youâd left the cave den where heâd claimed you, you thought Sanemi felt like home; now you knew for certain that he was.
Sanemiâs kisses turned heated, his lips breaking from yours to trail down your neck and across your throat, his hands roaming the curves of your body. âI should like to celebrate our betrothal,â he whispered, breath hot against your skin.
You shivered as his lips moved to the mating mark heâd seared into your skin. âWhat manner of celebration did you have in mind, my intended?â
âI believe humans tend to turn a blind eye when a newly betrothed couple decides to consummate their impending Union,â Sanemiâs grin was wicked. âAnd lucky for you, there are no eyes to judge.â
You scoffed, even as you pressed yourself tighter against Sanemiâs solid form. âI believe we are well-past the consummation stage, Wolf.â Your fingers danced up his neck to twine in his hair. âIn fact, I may already be carrying the proof of that.â
Sanemi scowled slightly, the hand on your waist tightening. âUnfortunately, Iâve yet to succeed in that endeavor,â and to your surprise, he looked genuinely disappointed. At your questioning look, he clarified. âI would be able to smell if you were carrying any pups.â His gaze darkened and his mouth pressed hotly against your ear, teeth grazing your lobe. âBut perhaps I shall try again,â he said lowly before his lips began a descent down your jaw. âAnd we have only consummated as mates,â the Wolf nipped at the sensitive spot beneath the corner of your jaw. âNow I want to fuck my betrothed.â
Before you could respond, Sanemi wrapped his hands under your thighs and hoisted you up, his mouth moving hungrily against yours as he walked you towards your shared bed, swallowing your soft giggle as he spread you out below him.
ââââââââââââ
Once, when you and Kotoha were sixteen, she told you she believed there was a difference between the marital act and love.
Youâd scoffed at her, for what she described was in theory, the same thing; it involved another doing things to you for pleasure â whether mutual or not. Kotoha had teased you for having such strong opinions with such little (nonexistent) experience.
But that night you learned that your late friend had been right; by the way Sanemi had you perched upon his lap, his hands resting steadily on your hips as he gently guided you up and down his thick length, you knew Sanemi was doing more than fucking you, or giving you his knot.
He was making love to you.
That was the only explanation for the way he sat, back resting against the headboard, face close enough to yours that your noses bumped every time you sunk back down into his lap. You could feel it in the way Sanemiâs lips seemed to chase yours, never letting you stray too far out of his reach, even when you broke away from his kiss to gasp, unable to hold in your breathy cries as he pushed against that spot that made you see stars. But he would always bring you right back to him, hand on the back of your head, tilting your face so he could swallow your moans with his feverish kisses. Between every break of his lips, he whispered his reverence of you; but that night, you were not his Lamb or sweetling; only your name fell from his lips, the single word of a song he sung only for you.
When you finally reached that sacred precipice, Sanemiâs thumb working between your thighs as he pushed faster and deeper up into you, he only held you tighter against him and told you to let go.
So you did.
Your lips against his, you tumbled headfirst over the edge and let yourself free fall through your pleasure with a pitched cry. Your hips slammed down on his length the moment Sanemi gave one final, great thrust up before he stilled, joining you in your descent as he filled you with nothing but him and his boundless love.
Once your highs finally subsided, Sanemi remained slumped against the headboard of the bed with you tightly wrapped around him, your face buried in the side of his neck. He had tried to pull out and away after a few moments, but youâd locked your arms and legs even tighter around him. You whimpered at the thought of the biting cold and emptiness you would feel if he took his warmth away, and you could not bear the thought of parting from him for even a moment.
With his hands tracing warmly up and down the length of your bare back, Sanemi maneuvered himself to lay down flat against the bed, keeping you atop him, his cock still nestled between your thighs. Your Huntsman cooed soft praises and adoration as his lips danced along your hairline, his fingers carving patterns over your spine. The familiar pull of sleep began to tug at your consciousness; and so, there, laying upon Sanemiâs chest and his length still safely sheathed within your warmth, you let yourself be pulled into sleepâs gentle embrace.
âââ
When you awoke the next morning, you thought youâd simply entered another dream. At first, there was nothing but warmth; golden, comforting warmth that enveloped you like the first rays of the sun in the spring, following months of bitter gray cold. Then there was an unbounded sense of security as you slowly registered that you were wrapped in a pair of strong arms that kept you tucked against something firm and solid. But then, a pair of fingers brushed lightly through your hair, gently pulling you from the throes of sleep and you realized you were not, in fact, dreaming; for this was so much better than any dream your brain could ever conjure on its own. This â this waking dream where you were cradled safely against the sturdy and warm chest of the man you loved â no longer merely your mate but your fiancĂ© â this was reality and better yet, it was yours. It was heaven.
Heaven, you thought again as a pair of lips found your forehead, and then the tip of your nose, before finally dipping to grace you with a kiss. Utter, blissful heaven.
The arms wrapped so protectively around you tightened, pulling you slightly up the torso of the Wolf beneath you so that he could deepen your kiss, his tongue gliding along the seam of your mouth. With a contented sigh, your lips parted, and Sanemiâs tongue swept in to dance languidly with yours. Soon â too soon, he broke away with a pant, though his hand rose to cup your cheek and keep your face close to his. His lips slid to your jaw as one hand kept your hand tilted back, your throat bared to him. âI love you,â he murmured between heavy, open-mouthed kisses he began trailing down your neck. âI love you. I love you.â You squirmed atop him, ticklish under the attack of his lips against the sensitive skin of your throat. âGods, woman,â he moaned against your skin as he nuzzled into your neck. âWhat have you done to me?â
Before you could question what he meant, Sanemi bucked his hips up and pressed the engorged tip of his stiffened length flush against your backside. Heat pooled instantly in your belly, your desire for him flaring to life. âJust slide it in,â you whispered, your own lips trailing lazily down his neck. âTake whatâs yours, Wolf. Iâm ready.â You shoved your hips back for emphasis and you did not try to stop your wanton moan when the head of his cock brushed against your already slick entrance.
The hands on your hips tightened as the Huntsman below desperately fumbled for his restraint. âLamb,â he groaned. âI have patrol duty this morning.â He nearly whimpered as you swiveled your hips yet again, impatient and demanding. He said your name once, in warning.
âAnd what of your duty to take care of your mate â your fiancĂ©?â You hummed, raking your nails lightly down the scarred mass of his pectorals. You smirked as Sanemi instinctively bucked up, seeking you out. âEspecially when she is so warm and wet and ready â â
A hand clamped over your mouth, silencing you with a muffled mmph! Innocently, far too innocently, you turned your eyes up to meet those of your mateâs as they glowered down at you. âYouâre a menace,â Sanemi growled. âA devious, tempting little thing whoâs going to get me in trouble with my pack.â With a groan, your mate rolled you gently off him, taking the time to ensure you were properly tucked under the blankets before he rose from the bed. You burrowed quickly into the spot where heâd lain, greedily clinging to the warmth heâd left behind.
Sanemi crossed toward the small armoire and tugged it open, pulling free a fresh pair of trousers and tunic. He dressed quickly, and before long, he was strapping his satchel around his broad shoulders, his own traveling cloak already fastened securely at the hollow of his throat. âWill you be alright, Lamb?â Sanemi turned toward you, a soft smile forming in his lips at the sight of you buried beneath the quilts.
You hummed sleepily. âI think I might venture out and gather more tea leaves â I saw a peppermint bush near Shinobuâs den.â You perked up at the memory of what grew on the edge of the Wolvesâ territory â those precious flowers that reminded you of home and of Grandmother. âThe snowdrops!â You looked at Sanemi, eyes brimming with excitement. âI almost forgot â and their season is nearly over!â
The Huntsman tensed. âI do not think itâs wise for you to venture so close to the edge of our land, Lamb,â he said carefully. âItâs on the opposite side of where weâll be patrolling.â At your quizzical look, he continued. âThat border isnât as secure as it should be; I do not want you trekking out there alone.â
Your excitement dimmed. âEven with my cloak?â
âAye,â Sanemi looked apologetic as he settled on the edge of the bed. âI know what creatures lurk in this portion of the Wood. Itâs too risky, and you are far too tempting, Lamb.â
Your head dropped back against the pillow, deflated. Sanemiâs frown deepened as he stretched a hand to caress your cheek. âIâll take you another time; I promise.â The Huntsman turned his head toward the cabin door and waited, listening. Whatever he heard with his enhanced abilities made him look back to you with a mischievous smile. âI still have a few moments before I must leave,â his fingers slid below the quilts and grazed your outer thigh. Gooseflesh erupted over your skin beneath this touch and your cheeks warmed. âI should like the taste of something sweet before I depart ââ
âNo,â you said primly, flinging the covers off your nude form. âI also have very important things to get to that cannot be delayed.â
Sanemi groaned, but you kept your back to him as you dressed. Once you finished lacing the stays on your outer corset, you padded over to the washstand and splashed your face with some of the water left in the basin. Refreshed, your fingers pulled your hair over your shoulder and you began combing through your slightly tangled locks, still mussed from the previous nightâs activities.
The Huntsman was silent as he slid from the bed and quietly made his way over to the stand, his hands bracing your waist from behind. âAllow me,â his voice was husky and his breath warm as it brushed as it tickled your ear where heâd leaned in close. He spun you to face him and took your hands in his before leading you back to the edge of the bed.
He sat and spread his legs wide before tugging you between them. âHere,â he murmured, patting his thigh. âSit.â
You did without question, your heart fluttering in your throat. Sanemiâs eyes remained locked with yours as he lightly turned your head to face away from him and slid your hair back over your shoulder. Gentle fingers carded through your hair, gathering different parts into sections. With a surprising nimbleness, Sanemi began weaving your tresses into an intricate yet secure braid. Within minutes, he secured the end of with a small leather cord, before dropping it over your shoulder.
âHow did you --?â You asked in wonder, fingers jumping to caress the plait in awe.
Sanemi shrugged. âI had younger sisters, once.â He shyly dropped your gaze, a faint blush spreading across your cheeks. âAnd I wanted to help my Ma out by learning.â
A warmth bloomed in your chest. âYou never cease to surprise me, Wolf,â you murmured in awe. Your thumb stroked his cheek as you leaned in and brushed your lips softly against his. âThank you.â
Sanemi moaned into your kiss. With a sly smirk, you pressed harder into him, tilting your head as though you were about to deepen it. You swiped your tongue along the seam of his mouth and instantly, the Huntsmanâs lips parted, but you broke away.
âYou have patrol duty.â
The Wolf groaned. âYouâre going to be the death of me, Lamb.âÂ
You pulled off his lap with a giggle, Sanemi grumbling under his breath at the unfairness of your teasing. You hummed as you crossed the floor of the cabin to the entryway, grabbing your basket from where youâd left by the door and tucking it into the crook of your arm. Your hands found your cloak and you pulled the thick, red wool over your shoulders, fingers working quickly to fasten the front clasp until it rested flat against the center of your collar bones. Once secured, you slid your arms through the small openings hidden among the cloakâs crimson folds, one at a time, allowing the fabric to settle fully against your frame. You turned back to your mate, eyes expectant. âShall we?â
With a sigh, Sanemi rose and joined you across the room, grabbing his satchel from where heâd hung it on a nail in the wall and looping it around his shoulders. You braced yourself against the impending onslaught of cold air that lay beyond the comforting warmth of your cabin as your hand moved to wrench the door open.
âHold it,â The Huntsmanâs hand closed around your wrist, halting you from stepping through the mouth of the cabin den and into the world beyond. Sanemi spun you towards him and pulled you flush against his form. Your eyes widened in surprise and anticipation, and your cheeks warmed as his hands lifted up, brushing lightly against your neck.
âCanât forget this,â the Huntsman whispered, his voice like honey, as he brought the hood of your cloak up over your head. He hummed softly, pleased. âThere,â one crooked finger brushed under your chin and Sanemi leaned in close, his breath hot against your ear. âPerfection.â
The sultry heat of his gaze flustered you and reflexively, your hand closed around the knob of the door and turned, accidentally pushing it open. You stumbled as the support of the heavy wood disappeared from behind you; you wouldâve fallen flat on your backside in the snow, had the Huntsman not locked an arm around your waist hauling you back against him with a wide, smug grin. As you sputtered, the impatient howl of either Shinobu or Genya rose above the blustering icy wind in the distance, beseeching Sanemi to hurry up and join them. But the Huntsman was utterly uninterested in removing his arm from their place around your waist, his hands stroking up the column of your spine beneath your cloak. âTry not to miss me terribly while Iâm gone,â he said cheekily.
You rolled your eyes. âI think I can make do; whether you can is another question.â
âNot in the slightest,â his answering grin was unabashed. âI miss you even when you are asleep beside me.â He cut off your answering giggle with an eager kiss, one arm leaving its place on your hips in favor of winding around your shoulders, keeping you anchored to him. Sanemi never kissed you once; either his kisses were long and slow, seamlessly melting into something more frantic and heated, or they were rapid, lingering pecks against your lips, just as he was giving you right then. âWhen I return,â he said between two quick brushes of his lips against yours. âI expect to find you in bed,â another kiss. âAnd ready for me.â
Your giggle was swallowed by another sweet press of his lips against your smile. âShall I await you already nude? Or should you like the honors, Wolf?â
His grip around you tightened slightly. âIt matters not; the night will end the same, my beautiful betrothed.â
Your stomach fluttered at the reminder that the two of you were now promised to one another. âAnd how does the night end, Huntsman?â
Sanemi ducked to brush his lips against your pulse point. âWith you nice and warm and full, Lamb, just as I know you love to be,â the promise in his tone made you clench your thighs together. âAnd, the godsâ willing, with my babe growing in your belly.â
It was an effort not to grind down against the thigh heâd slipped between your legs. You chanted, over and over to yourself, that Genya and Shinobu were within hearing distance, and if they could hear, they certainly could smell the way your body was desperate to react to your mateâs promise. But that sobering reminder didnât mean you couldnât enjoy teasing him a little more. âThen youâd better hurry back,â you pressed your lips against his ear, exhaling hotly.â"Or else I may have to begin without you.â
Sanemi loosed a warning growl. âIf you deprive me of any of those sweet noises youâre prone to making while Iâm inside you, the only thing youâll be taking tonight are your own fingers.â
âThen youâd better not dwadle, dear Huntsman,â you cooed, catching his ear lobe between your teeth before pulling away. âAfter all, Iâm prone to making trouble.â
âThat you are,â he retorted. And, without regard to the fact that his brother and friend likely could hear every single word of your exchange, Sanemiâs hands bunched your skirt up your legs. You yelped as you felt him reach between your thighs, and with a devilish smirk, his fingers dipped between your folds and circled your sensitive bead.
He leaned in until his lips nearly touched yours, but stilled before they could. âBut so am I, love.â His fingers slid down and plunged quickly into your cunt. Your hands flew to his shoulders, your nails digging hard into the skin and muscle beneath the layers of his tunic and cloak as you clung to him. Your walls clenched tightly around his fingers as he pumped his hand once, twice, before abruptly drawing away, ignoring your indignant screech.
âY-you --!â you glowered at your mate, wanting nothing more than to wipe that insufferable, lopsided, smug grin clean from his face.
âBehave, little Lamb,â he tutted. âI shall see you soon.â With a wink, he lifted the fingers heâd had inside you only seconds before to his mouth and sucked them clean. He then turned on his heel, and sauntered away toward the trees, leaving you blushing and sputtering in his wake.
---
More than an hour had passed since you and Sanemi had parted ways, and to your great annoyance, your cheeks still burned hot.
You wandered the grounds of the Wolvesâ territory with mild interest, having already spent much of your time combing the Wood for various species of plants and flora since your arrival. Admittedly, youâd stopped paying close attention a while ago as you ambled along, concerned only with your desire to make time go as quickly as possible so you could return home to your Wolf and pay back his torture tenfold. The miserable tease.
You paused your strolling to inspect the woodland scenery around you. Your gut lurched in panic when you didnât immediately recognize your surroundings. Swallowing your rising panic, you whipped your head back and forth, desperately scanning the landscape for anything that was vaguely knowable, anything at all â
At the familiar sight of holly bushes smattered amongst towering pines, your heart leapt for joy. Though youâd had every intention of heeding Sanemiâs wishes â and warnings â about seeking out the snow drops youâd spied when first arriving to the Wolvesâ territory, youâd somehow nevertheless found yourself near the Western border.
You paused where you stood, cocking your head and squinting at what lay beyond the spread of trees and winter foliage. If your memory was correct, the clusters of the precious wildflowers grew no more than fifty paces from where you currently stood. It wasnât that you were letting your guard down â after all, you knew as well as anyone that the relative silence which settled over the Netherwood did not mean there was nothing sinister lurking beyond the pine trees which formed a barrier between you and the outermost boundary of your sanctuary. You knew that.
But.
Boundaries were boundaries, were they not? And the Wolves would not have the territory they claimed if those boundaries had been compromised. The risk was marginal, you rationed. After all, it wasnât as though you were stepping outside of the Wolvesâ claimed land; rather, you were only toeing the line of demarcation.
And you really wanted those flowers.
You tugged the hood of your cape over your head, allowing the blanket of its protection to bolster your confidence. Your step was even as you crunched softly over the frozen terrain of the forest floor, taking care to avoid the slick icy patches of mud. As you breached the line of pine trees, a low-hanging branch you hadnât noticed ensnared itself in the fabric of your cloak, tangling you in a flurry of pine needles that rained down as you shoved the branch away. Another thirty paces later and you spotted the familiar, drooping bell-curves of your favorite flower, clustered in small patches that dotted the winter-hardened earth.
âYes!â You clapped your hands in glee. Though your cheeks stung under the icy bite of the forest air, a warmth bloomed in your chest at the sight of the snow drops. They were in full bloom, their petals emitting a soft, ivory glow that posed a lovely contrast with the emerald of their stems.
But even as you knelt among those cherished flowers, you could not deny the heaviness that settled into your chest as your fingers grazed the delicate bulbs. For as much comfort as the sight of the snow drops brought you, they also brought the bruise of your Grandmotherâs loss back to surface. How she would have loved to see them here, growing without restraint or mind as to the harsh conditions of winter. Sheâd always reminded you that their resilience came from their fragility; their perseverance in spite of conditions that withered even the largest and most colorful of florae. You pulled your gardening shears from the bottom of your basket. With a wistful smile and a heavy heart, you began cutting the stems of your cherished snow drops, filling the bottom of your basket with the delicate mementos of the life youâd once had.
A crack of a tree branch startled you, the garden shears dropping to the earth with a dull thud. Your head snapped up in alarm, eyes alert and apprehensive as you scanned the trees, praying that the sound was only the result of some small animal or bird. But your assessment of your surroundings was complicated by the sudden arrival of a strange, icy mist that curled around the gaps between the trees, creeping closer and closer to where youâd crouched to pick the snow drops.
The fog brought forth a precipitous drop in temperature, eliciting a violent shiver from you. Your eyes strained to see through the mist that descended around you, thick enough that the even the enormous, gnarled trunks of the Woodâs ancient trees were soon concealed from sight. And it was quiet; not quiet in the way youâd come to understand the Netherwood to be, but quiet in a way that suggested all sound had been sucked from the forest. A void.
Tendrils of the fog stretched toward you, icy fingers clawing your cheeks with their sharp, frigid sting until your skin felt raw. The shift in the air also brought forth a change in scent, chasing away the familiar dirt and rot of the Wood with a cloying, sickly sweet odor that strangled you with the pungent yet distinct scent of flowers.
With trembling limbs you forced yourself to rise to full height, just as the frosted mist parted to let a dark figure step forward through the trees. The first thing you saw were his eyes â two, floating, multicolored orbs that glowed brightly in the shadows, leering at you with a predatory hunger. Your shallow breath died in your throat as trepidation melted into pure terror. You knew those eyes; your very presence in the Netherwood was because youâd fled from their soulless cruelty. Some base instinct buried deep within you begged you to run; to scream. Yet, your feet remained rooted in place, as though you too, were nothing more than one of the ancient, towering trees of the Netherwood, unable to do anything but observe the violence that was about to unfold within its shadows. The eyes were followed by a flash of teeth â sharp and deadly â as the figure took the form of the one you feared most.
Fuck. Fuck.
Douma wiped a single tear that fell down his cheek. âIâm so relieved to have finally found you, darling! You have no idea how long Iâve searched for you.â
He took a single step forward that sent you scurrying three steps back, your feet sending your basket skittering to the side. âGet away from me,â you warned. âGo back to whatever hellhole you crawled out from.â
In a flash, he was on you, hand locked around your throat and eyes cold. âWhere do you think youâre going, Y/N?â Fingers tipped with long nails â sharp, pointed, black nails â dug into the flesh of your forearm, easily piercing through the linen and suede sleeves of your blouse. His speed had knocked the breath out of you â heâd been fast, abnormally, monstrously fast. The horror sluiced through you as you realized no human could move that quickly; could wield the strength with which he now used to keep you rooted in place.
Douma wasnât human.
As though heâd heard that very thought the moment it solidified in your brain, Douma smiled, revealing four, sharp fangs, longer and more wicked looking than even Sanemiâs in his half-shifted form. He took a step closer, his sickeningly sweet breath fanning over your face as your former fiancĂ© practically thrummed with excitement. âThe things I have planned for you,â he murmured, tracing the curve of your cheek teasingly with one clawed nail. There was a sharp prick followed by something warm.
Heâd drawn blood. Douma leaned in close and let his tongue â slimy and cold, just like his skin, trail teasingly up the line heâd drawn, humming at the taste of your blood. âYouâll serve me well, Y/N,â he cooed, his hand squeezing your cheeks roughly. âJust like all my wives have served me well; just like Kotoha.â
You could not stop yourself from swallowing, hard, as you tried but failed to find courage as death â painful and cruel looked you straight in the eyes. Sanemi! You tossed out desperately down your bond, tugging on that internal string with all your might. Sanemi, itâs him!
You willed yourself not to cry; not to tremble, as the monster with the iridescent eyes looked at you like you were the main course of a feast made only for him. SANEMI.
Doumaâs smile was predatory and it made your knees buckle and your resolve crumble. You were going to die. Slowly. Painfully.
The village Worship Leader trailed a hand down the side of your throat until it came to rest on that spot between your shoulder and neck. Right over the top of your mating mark. âWe canât have him interfering before our fun begins,â Douma shook his head, his eyes mocking. âAfter all, I need him good and wound up when he comes for you.â
Fear melted into something more primal in your gut â something hotter, more paralyzing, that would not let you look away from his monstrous gaze no matter how much your brain begged you. Douma hummed softly to himself as he sunk a nail into your skin, tearing easily through the layers of your cloak and tunic. You screamed as he dragged it down, directly across the mating mark Sanemi had given you all those weeks ago. The mark that was supposed to link you to him; to give you a direct line of communication to your mate when you needed him most. Beneath the hot burst of blood that trailed Doumaâs nail as he ripped your skin open, something cold washed over you, like a flame being snuffed out by a burst of winter wind.
Doumaâs hand wrapped around your throat, choking off your scream. âSleep,â he commanded. Your stomach dropped with the realization that the Netherwood had begun to fall away as your vision tunneled. You desperately tried to tug on the bond once more, pleadingly, to alert your Huntsman that you were well and truly doomed. But there was nothing there; no invisible string you could pull, no connection with Sanemi that you could draw upon to let him know. As your consciousness faded, so too did shred any remaining hope youâd had that he would come for you.
For the mating bond had been cut.
--
The Wolf pack slowed to a stop at the edge of their landâs Eastern border. Shinobuâs small, violet-black form trotted away from her male companions, her small bag clutched tightly in her mouth, and disappeared behind a cluster of holly bushes to shift back to her human form. With the Shifter out of sight, the two Shinazugawa brothers also re-assumed their human-like appearances, Sanemi snatching up his satchel from where heâd dropped it on the ground and hastily tugging his clothing over his naked form, teeth chattering in the cold.
The white Wolf had just barely tugged his cloak back over his shoulders when his female friend emerged from behind the brambles, dressed warmly in thick layers of wool and deerskin, her hands working quickly to secure her hair in a knot at the back of her hair. Genya, too, had redressed, though he still shivered violently where he stood. He shifted from foot to foot, clasping his hands before his mouth and huffing out hot puffs of air in an effort to warm them.
âAll seemed calm on the way here,â Shinobu remarked, though her mouth was set in a grim line and her brow was pinched. âIt makes what we discovered on the Western front even more unsettling ââ
âOr,â Sanemi countered. âIt only supports that it was an anomaly; mere coincidence.â
The Shifterâs luminous, lilac eyes narrowed at her companion. âYou will not convince me that wasâŠnormal, even for a place like the Netherwood.â
The Huntsman dragged a tired hand over his face. âIâm not trying to dismiss you, Shinobu. What we found was,â his mouth twisted into a grimace. âDisturbing. I donât deny it.â He paced a little ways ahead, drawing near a cluster of rose bushes demarcating their territorial line, the blooms of which had long since withered and died. âBut weâve found no other sign of anything amiss.â
Genya looked helplessly back and forth between his brother and the Shifter who he considered another sister. Though sixteen and perfectly entitled to voice his opinions to his packmates, Sanemi knew he still struggled to assert himself â especially when conflict arose.
The raven-haired doctor held the elder Shinazugawaâs stare for a moment longer, her head cocked and her lips pursed. After a heavy pause, Shinobu sighed in resignation, clicking her tongue. âFine. But that doesnât mean we should let our guard down.â
âAnd we wonât,â the white Wolf said smoothly. âWe never do.â
The pack fell into their standard patrol formation of an elongated triangle, with Sanemi and Genya at the back and Shinobu heading the front. A silence which settled over the three pack mates carried some of the tension from the earlier exchange between the two eldest, but it wasnât uncommon. Their senses had to remain on high alert as they took note of every scent, sound, and shift within the Netherwood. The Huntsmanâs eyes were sharp as he scanned the land making up the easternmost point of their territory. In truth, he didnât think there was much to really look at, apart from piles of snow and dead trees and plants. And it was precisely because of the endless sea of decayed brown and white that made up the winter Wood, that the sudden appearance of emerald green stuck out like a sore thumb that snagged his attention.
Sanemi drew to a halt even as Shinobu and his brother continued forward, his eyes drawn to a small thatch of wildflowers poking up from beneath the snow coating the Wood. While he was not as familiar with the various florae and vegetation which grew in the Netherwood, his mate was, and Y/N had been particularly vocal about her love for one particular flower which bloomed only in the winter.
He squatted down and thumbed the dainty bell petals that drooped toward the ground, their white almost a perfect match to the snow below. He smiled to himself. There was no doubt; these were his Y/Nâs beloved snowdrops.
The Wolf had felt guilty when heâd gently broken the news the Western border where sheâd first spotted her favorite flower wasnât safe enough accommodate her to venturing out there on her own. His Lamb was a curious one, but heâd been relieved when she hadnât pressed him for any further explanation; if she had, he didnât know what he wouldâve told her. Because truthfully, he still had difficulty making sense of what he and his packmates had discovered laying right at their Western border only a week earlier.
--
âWhat in the name of the gods?â Genya whispered in horror.
Sanemi grimaced. âA monster did this, not the gods.â His fists clenched as he looked away from the grisly sight. âThe gods likely ignored this poor girl as she cried for their mercy.â
Shinobu said nothing, only making a small squeak before she turned away, taking a few, quick steps toward the trees to collect herself. Sanemi couldnât blame the young shifter for needing a moment to breathe. Though she was a doctor and had seen her faire share of ghastly wounds and missing limbs, Sanemi couldnât quite recall the last time any of them had come across carnage quite like that which was splattered across this small section of the Netherwood, just outside of the territoryâs Western border.
It was a girl, likely no more than eighteen, though the way her disembodied head was left crudely sitting atop a broken tree trunk, eyes wide and her mouth stretched open and frozen with her final scream, made it difficult to say with certainty.
The rest of her body â or rather, the pieces of it â were strewn about, soiling the otherwise pristine winter landscape with her gore. Truthfully, it was difficult to see what was left of her; her torso was barely more than a shoulder joint and a few rips, the remaining skin ragged and torn. Upon closer inspection, Sanemi thought he spied teeth marks â vicious and cruel â which had punctured the surrounding flesh while the mouth of whatever monster had found the girl ripped into her, feasting on her meat. It was the bottom half of the girl that disturbed him, disturbed all of them, the most. For there, just in front of the tree trunk upon which her head was displayed like some sort of prize, the girlâs lower body was posed, her legs lewdly spread and propped open, exposing her. Beneath her thighs, Sanemi could see where blood had saturated the ground so deeply, no snow remained.
âA monster?â Shinobu returned to the boys, her hand pressed tightly against her mouth. She looked away, unable to stomach the scene. âWhat monster would leave so much behind?â
Sanemi made to look away, but his eyes snagged on the sight of a fox mask, partially buried in the snow. From where he stood, he could see it had been broken in half and spattered with the girlâs blood. His stomach roiled. âWeâve seen other monsters leave parts behind. Itâs not uncommon.â
Shinobuâs mouth set into a hard line, her fists clenched. âWhat monster do you know thatâŠposes its victims?â
The white Wolf fought the shudder that licked down his spine. She was right; errant body parts, disemboweled humans, that was all to be expected when one traversed through the Wood. It was common; unfortunate and a dastardly waste of human life, but common. But, as Sanemi wracked his memory, he found that he could not recall a single instance, in all his years of living in the Netherwood, of a monster that made such a gruesome display of its victim.
Shinobu looked to where the girlâs head sat, and her expression darkened. âThis is a message.â
Genyaâs head snapped to the young shifter, fear creeping into his eyes. âA m-message? But why? We have no enemies."
âNo, we donât,â Sanemi agreed, voice hoarse with emotion. He turned away from the sight, fearful that he might begin to dry heave if he did not. âShinobu, where is that coming from?â
The Shifter turned to him; her face ashen. âWhat else could it be? That --,â she lifted a shaking hand to point at the head staring blankly in horror at them. âYou donât think that isnât some sort of signal? A warning?âÂ
He winced. âIt is a tragedy; but not one we havenât seen before.â
A vein pulsed in the young doctorâs brow â a telltale sign of her anger â and she turned away from the two brothers, fists clenched as she worked to calm herself. Her back remained rigid as the seconds ticked by, but with a shaky exhale, she turned back to her packmates, face stony but neutral.
âWhat do you suggest we do?â Her voice was hollow and it made the Huntsmanâs gut twist.
Sanemiâs eyes found the girlâs where her head sat atop the broken tree stump, wide, but lifeless. âWe bury her,â he finally spoke, voice rough with emotion. âWhatever beast is responsible took her life, but it cannot have her dignity, too.â
--
âAniki?â Genya called from several yards away, having only just noticed that his elder brother was no longer walking with the other two wolves.
âIâm coming,â Sanemi called back, fighting off the shudder rippling down his spine. He shook his head in an effort to clear the disturbing memory from his conscience and swiftly pulled his pocketknife from the pouch on his hip. With a quick swipe of the blade through the viridian stalks of the flowers, the Wolf gathered a handful of snow drops and tucked them safely inside his satchel. Flowers secured, Sanemi jogged to catch up with his pack mates, hoping that his small offering would make up for his inability to take Y/N to pick the snow drops herself.
--
The pack continued to patrol for a little while longer before breaking for lunch. Theyâd come upon a small creek bed, dried up for the winter, but with several sizeable boulders that provided them with adequate seats to sit and eat their rations of dried beef and fruit.
Though heâd butted heads with the packâs doctor earlier, Shinobu and Sanemi fell back into easy conversation, if for no other reason than to ease Genyaâs palpable anxiety as they ate. Sanemi was watching with amusement as Shinobu busied herself with teasing Genya, whoâd slyly asked after when Mitsuri was due to return for a visit, when suddenly, the world around him fell away, a violent ringing shrieking in his ears.
Sanemi Shinazugawa was no stranger to fear. Fear was a rational experience; it was what kept him alive, kept him moving, even when everything within him begged him to give up, to stop. Heâd known fear that day when the monster attacked his family, maiming him and Genya while killing everyone else. Heâd known it again the first time he shifted, the moon ominously down upon him as his skin rippled and his joints contorted.
But this was not mere fear; this was terror. Pure, unadulterated and boundless terror like heâd never before known. It was paralyzing; the kind that locked you where you stood and would not let your body move, no matter how much your brain screamed at you otherwise. It broke him out in a cold sweat, his body unable to regulate its own temperature as it trembled.
And yet, the terror was not his own; not there, sitting with his pack mates as they rested during their routine patrol. It was precisely because it wasnât his terror to begin with that ever hair on Sanemiâs body stood straight on end as the sensation rippled through him like the aftershock of some earthen calamity. There was only one way for him to feel such soul-shattering trepidation when he was otherwise safe and sound; because that meant Y/N â his mate â was anything but.
Sanemi sprung to his feet, not caring at the wide-eyed alarm of his closest friend and brother as they voiced their concern. He was far too focused on thundering her name down their shared bond, demanding that she answer, that she give some sort of sign as to her location so he could run to her, help her, protect her â
Another surge of that hot, frantic alarm and then nothing.The bond went silent.
And Sanemi knew terror â true terror.
âââââ
For miles, Sanemi and his pack tracked the scent of his mate, having immediately sprung into action the moment heâd been able to choke out her name and the word âdanger.â
At first, they followed the trial back to the heart of their territory, right to the home they shared. Some foolish part of him had hoped they would leap into the valley surrounding their cabin-dens and see smoke billowing merrily from the chimney, signaling that Y/N was bustling away inside at the hearth. Desperately, heâd hoped the sharp flare of panic heâd felt before the bond went silent was a mere fluke; that his fiancĂ© was safe and warm and unharmed. But, as the pack drew closer to the small, clustered hilltop dens, Sanemi knew his feeble attempts at optimism were futile. His mateâs scent continued well past the Wolvesâ dens, and he dreaded the way the Wood seemed to swallow every last trace of her whole.
Y/Nâs scent continued in an unbroken trail due west, and with each bit of ground the Wolves and Shifter covered, the knot in Sanemiâs gut tightened. By the time the small pack closed in around the very edge of their territory, Sanemiâs anxiety had devolved into utter dread.
The Western border. Sheâd gone to the Western border.
The Wolf sped ahead of his pack and launched himself through a small break in the trees â right at the outermost limit of their territory. Nausea crept up the back of his throat as his mind registered his mateâs trail led precisely to the same spot where he and the others had discovered the brutalized, half-eaten remains of the girl with the fox mask mere days earlier. Sanemi thundered to a stop, his chest heaving as he looked wildly around the clearing. There was a sickening sweetness in the air that made his nose burn, but beneath the poisonous stench of flowers â lotus flowers, Sanemi noted grimly â he could smell it. Though faint, the scent of clove and juniper berries was unmistakable; Y/N. But the scent of Sanemiâs home was undercut by the pungent, lingering bite of her fear.
He traced a path to where her fading scent was the strongest, his gut souring as the trail led to a patch of snow drops that had been laid flat against the earth, crushed. But it was the sight of her basket, toppled and discarded haphazardly to the side, that sent the fur on his back standing straight up. With a shudder that hardly registered, the Huntsman shifted back to his human form.
He bellowed his mateâs name, the echo of his anguished plea reverberating off hollow bases of rotting trees.
The ground trembled as both Genya and Shinobu skidded into the clearing behind him, eyes alert and ears pricked for any sign of danger â or of their friendâs missing mate.
Sanemi paid them no mind, continuing only to roar his fiancĂ©âs name, the sound of Genyaâs pleading, cautious whimpers lost beneath the waves of his tormented howls. The Wolf could not bring himself to care that he might call forth every foul creature which resided in the Netherwood out from the shadows. Let them come, let them attempt to get between him and his mate; Sanemi would relish tearing through them with every swipe of his claw and snap of his jaws. Nothing would stop him from finding her, even if it meant he had to burn the Wood to cinders.
âHer scent tracks north,â Shinobuâs voice cleaved through the roaring in Sanemiâs ears. âAs does whatever this â floral stench is.â
The Huntsmanâs lips curled into a snarl. The sickly-sweet odor of flowers set his teeth on edge, made his stomach twist and contort into a knotted, sour lump.
Genya paced ahead a few feet; eyebrows drawn close together. âA-aniki,â the tremble in his brotherâs voice made Sanemiâs blood turn to ice.
Both he and Shinobu turned apprehensively towards the youngest Wolf who was standing beside a gnarled, ancient oak tree whose bark was blackened by rot. Genya leaned forward, carefully lifting something that had been ensnared around the treeâs roots jutting up through the frozen earth. Cold dread settled like a stone weight in Sanemiâs gut. For there, pinched delicately between his fingers was a piece of scarlet wool, its edges ragged and torn. And though it blended in against the crimson of the cloak, all three wolves caught the unmistakable scent of iron which adorned the fabric: blood. Human blood. Y/Nâs blood.
Shinobuâs violet eyes settled on Sanemiâs quaking form. âCan you feel the bond?â
Sanemi knew that she already knew the answer, just as he knew what the Shifter was truly asking. After all, there was only one sure way that a mating bond could be severed: it did not simply ebb and reappear at random. He could not control the claws which burst from his fingertips, but he clenched his fists tight to keep the others from seeing how his control fractured. âSheâs not dead.â He snarled.
The slight young shifter kept her chin high, though her voice softened. âSanemi, I know ââ
âSheâs not dead,â he snapped, baring his teeth at his packmate. âShe is alive and wounded, but not dead.â
Shinobu was wise enough to keep quiet, but Sanemi refused to meet her eyes anyways; he knew what he would see swimming in those luminous violet orbs if he dared to look.
Doubt. Pity.
He could stomach neither.
âHer scent goes north before splitting into different directions,â Sanemi said with an unnerving calmness, pushing forward to the edge of the territoryâs border. âOne goes northeast and the other tracks west.â He turned back to his brother and friend, ignoring the tightening in his stomach at their wary, timid expressions. âShinobu, go back to your den and wait. She has lost blood and will likely need your help once we find her.â
âGenya,â Sanemi turned his attention toward his brother, who straightened. âY/Nâs scent is weaker to the west than it is to the north. See what you can find, but if you havenât found her by sunrise, come back to me.â
The young boy nodded, and Sanemi felt a rush of gratitude at the fierce determination which blazed to life in his eyes. âAnd if I find her?â
âHowl but do not wait for me â get her to Kochoâs.â
Genya nodded and turned to shift but paused. âAnd if you find her, brother?â
The white Wolfâs eyes darkened. âListen for my howl and come to us. I will make sure Y/N is safe, and then the two of you are to go straight home.â Sanemiâs voice dropped to a low growl, vicious and lethal. âAnd then I shall deal with Douma.â
---
Time was an odd thing. When youâd first entered the Wood, youâd lamented your inability to track time as it passed. Youâd only vaguely been able to identify that youâd been running for just over a day and a half before youâd found Sanemi, but youâd been utterly unable to discern whether it was morning, afternoon, or evening when youâd stumbled upon that creek bed. Now, however, you had no concept of time. Though, that had less to do with any shortcomings of yours and everything to do with the monster who kept bringing you in and out of consciousness, awakening you with a sharp press of his taloned nail against your forehead just so he could beat you, only to send you careening back into the darkness when he decided your screams and cries had grown too loud for comfort.
Youâd been straddling the thin, wavering line between consciousness and oblivion for what felt like hours. You were helpless to accept yet another brutal, sharp kick square to your abdomen, thanks to the way Douma had you restrained. Your arms were stretched out uncomfortably on either side, weighed down by twin, heavy cuffs of iron that your captor had locked around your wrists before youâd regained consciousness after heâd initially stolen you away.
âNow, now, Y/N, that wonât do,â Despite the cloying sweetness of lotus which clung to his skin, Doumaâs breath was putrid as it fanned over your face, smelling distinctly of rotted meat. âYou need to keep those pretty eyes open for me, hm?â
Against your will, your eyelids were forced back open, and you could not avoid the chilling sight of your Village Worship Leaderâs cruel smile, the sharp points of his fangs far too close for comfort. You wanted to recoil from his proximity; but the monster â the Fae, heâd gleefully confirmed earlier â had you helplessly trapped. Anger boiled under your skin as you glared at him, your mind clearing with each second you were forced to bear his rancid breath.
âTell me, you lovely little creature â when you spread your legs for him at night, did you truly believe yourself to be beyond my reach?â
âWhat would your dear grandmother say, Y/N?â Douma shook his head mournfully. âTo think that her precious granddaughter would allow herself to be so sullied by a beast ââ
âFuck you!â You snarled; your teeth bared in a defiant display of rage belied by the weak way you tugged against your restraints. âYou are the one who stole her from me â donât you dare soil her memory!â
The beastly village worship leader merely shrugged his shoulders. âShe tried to conceal what was mine.â He tutted. âIs being a beastâs whore really more preferable than marriage, my love?â
âI would rather be a beastâs whore than your victim.â You spat with as much acid as you could muster. âYouâre nothing more than a wretched murderer.â
âIs that so?â Douma intoned, as though growing bored with your conversation. âEven still, whores can serve a fruitful purpose. Kotoha did, after all.â
âDonât you say her name,â you snarled. âYou murdered her in cold blood and dumped her body in the Wood.â Hatred, hot and venomous, coated your tongue, igniting a newfound boldness. âShe was kind and good and loyal, even to you â and you killed her.â
âKilled her?â Douma repeated, eyebrows raising in surprise before he waived his hand dismissively. âOh, please donât let your ire with me trivialize what I do with my wives, Y/N. It wounds me.â
âIâm no murderer, my dear,â the Faeâs temporary irritation with you melted into unrestrained, savage glee. âYou see, my wives serve a far moreâŠenticing purpose beyond that which even your feeble little mind can comprehend.â
You paid him little mind, instead pulling harshly against your restraints, your anger vicious enough that you wanted to tear free, to sink your nails into his skin and rip him open â
âI was going to consume Kotoha on our wedding night,â Doumaâs smile was wicked and cruel as you froze. In an instant, all your fire was extinguished, doused out by a bucket of water as icy and chilling as the malicious glint in the Faeâs eyes. âI was going to bed her and devour her, just as I did with the previous three girls.â His voice dripped with poisoned honey. âHavenât you ever wondered what it would be like, my lovely girl? After all, all living creatures are driven by two, distinct hungers â appetites of the flesh and of the stomach.â He licked his lips. âYou cannot blame me for combining both to sate mine.â
Douma let his words hang heavy in the air. For a moment, there was no sound but the wind as it whipped around and howled through the barren Wood, edged only by your ragged, panting breaths. Your knees shook hard enough that standing was nearly impossible, especially in your restrained state. Bile rose in your throat. It was worse â the fate that had greeted your friend had been so much worse than youâd imagined.
âSo I planned to use Kotoha the same as the other three, but when we returned to my Estate, I noticed something peculiar about her,â Douma sighed dreamily. âHer scent â it was unlike anything Iâd ever come across before. Mouthwatering.â
âHer pregnancy,â he confirmed, delighting in your horror. âThe village whore was only a few months along, but the moment I scented her, I knew I could not rush something so delectable; so unique. I elected to wait for her to ripen. Trust when I say it was an exercise of restraint to not enjoy her sooner.â His grin could have curdled milk. âHowever, I can be patient when I know there is a reward at the end. And the girl did satisfy my other appetite â though not exactly in the way I prefer.â Douma waved a dismissive hand. âI donât find willing partners all that exciting, but a cunt is a cunt. Again, patience is my virtue.â
âYou are vile,â you choked, blood coursing hot through your veins. âKotoha was a good girl, who only wanted to be taken care of and loved!â
âI did grow fond of her,â Douma continued smoothly. âIn fact, I considered even allowing her to live and remain with me. Simple as she was, she was quite entertaining â always singing the sweetest songs. Even that boy of hers was adorable in his own way.â Douma sighed, suddenly wistful. âIt was unfortunate - my men, though loyal, are pitifully stupid. They seemed to have been hopeful that, before I had my way with Kotoha, I would allow them to have a small taste. I suppose even they couldnât be satisfied fucking their own wives â or horses.â His nose wrinkled in disgust. âAs if I would allow them to sully my feast with their filth.â
âRegardless, Kotoha overheard them and was offended. She tried to take her child and run â straight into the Netherwood, the imbecile.â He fluttered his eyelashes at you in a mocking display of affection. âThe poor simpleton didnât have your resourcefulness, Iâm afraid.â The fae shook his head, mournfully. âI caught her near a cliffside waterfall â sheâd barely made it half a kilometer into the Wood.â He looked to his nails, so monstrously sharp and curved, and picked at something beneath them, disinterested. âThe stupid fool tossed her child over the cliff â as though it would save him.â A smirk unfurled across his mouth. âNo matter; it made bringing her back to my Estate all the easier.â Douma stretched his hands behind his head, interlocking his fingers and exhaled, the portrait of nonchalance and carelessness. âAnd then she joined my other wives before her. It was almost difficult to tell which was tastier in the moment â her body or her flesh.â
âI do miss her sweet voice,â Douma added after a moment, ignorant to the way you slumped against the forest floor, legs no longer able to support your weight. âBut I suppose that will always be a part of me now, wouldnât you say?â The rainbow-eyed Fae looked to you and smiled. âBesides, then I set eyes upon you, and all was forgotten. I knew I simply had to have you.â
You no longer trembled in fear; the horror of his revelation sat too heavy in your limbs, as did the realization that would not see your beloved Huntsman again. âSo what shall you do with me?â Your voice was low, flat, as you lifted your eyes to meet those of the smirking beast. âShall I join my sisters before me? Am I to now share their fate?â It was a masochistic question, for certain, but one you needed him to answer. If you were to die like Kotoha and the women before her, then you would do everything in your power to cling to the last remnants of your dignity. You would not cry; you would not scream â no matter how he tortured you.You would not give him the satisfaction of your suffering; you couldnât. But you needed time to prepare â no matter how clear it was that yours was up.
In a flash, the Fae closed the distance between you and took your face in his hand.âOh Y/N,â Doumaâs eyes swam with a pity that did not match his tightening grip on your jaw. âI am worth far more than some pathetic, scrappy village girl.â Your eyes prickled at the way his nails dug into the skin of your cheek. âEspecially now that youâve led me to something far more suitable to my tastes.â
Your stomach flipped violently against the putrid stench of the Faeâs breath as it washed over your face. Douma tilted your head from side to side, inspecting. âRemarkable, isnât it?â He hummed. âThat an insignificant little girl like you could enchant a Wolf.â
âAnd not just an ordinary shifter; a Werewolf,â he practically glowed with his excitement. âOne of the rarest yet most powerful beasts to walk our Earth. Imagine my surprise, then, when I tracked you right to that little cave den after you let him mark and fuck you.â
Your eyes widened and a shaky breath wheezed from your lungs. He couldnât have known â shouldnât have known that Sanemi marked you. The bite changed your scent â the Huntsman had confirmed it. And yet, when heâd found you on the Wolvesâ western border, heâd known exactly where to strike â exactly where to sever the bond between you and your mate and render you entirely helpless. âH-howâ?â
The Faeâs finger was cold as it caressed your cheek. âDid you honestly think you were safe simply because you let a beast rut into you? Is that why you debased yourself so â allowed a Wolf to fuck you in the middle of the Wood like some wild whore?â
Your stomach seized with violent nausea. There was no way he could have known what youâd done with Sanemi in the Wood; not unless heâd been far closer than either of you were aware.
âMagic begets magic, stupid girl,â Douma dropped the sugary sweet syrup coating his voice, dropping to something more vicious; menacing. âYour cloak has been calling to me from the moment I stepped foot in the Wood. It left a trail only I could follow.â His fingers crudely pinched your cheeks, pulling a small, discomforted whimper from the back of your throat. âYou were never going to evade me, darling Y/N. I am inevitable.â
It felt as though the ground below you had opened wide, leaving you to free fall through the air with no end â not safety â in sight. The realization slammed into you with savage, bruising force. The mating mark had done nothing to conceal you, after all; this whole time, Douma had been toying with you like a barn cat did a mouse.
âYour cloak was enchanted with the same magic my kind is made from,â he purred. âThe fae have always had a certain proclivity for finding and possessing objects we recognize as kin â and your precious cloak is no exception.â Douma pressed the knife-like tip of his nail into your lower lip until you felt a bead of blood gather and slide down your chin. âTry as you might, your darling little heirloom led me right to a prize beyond my wildest imagination.â
His grip on your face loosened and Doumaâs fingers dropped to toy with the ends of your hair. âWerewolves are capable of slaughtering a hundred beings â whether human or monster, in a matter of seconds.â Italian was with no small amount of horror that you realized the fae was drooling. âBut as I said, they are rare. Only a Werewolf can create other werewolves â and only through blood.â Doumaâs eyes found the juncture of your shoulder, to where your mark lay torn and bloodied. âMagic â including curses â is fickle like that. Most magic requires a blood debt; by blood it is done, and by blood it is undone.â
âIâve only ever met one other Werewolf â years ago. I barely escaped with my life.â He grimaced slightly. âBut, that was a seasoned beast; your Wolf has kept his curse under seal, hasnât he, sweet Y/N?â
For once, you were grateful that your fear and dread had swollen your tongue leaving you incapable of speech. But your silence only served as confirmation for the demon fae, whose sickening grin returned.
âHumanity is a curse,â Douma tutted, chuckling to himself. âI do not imagine it would take much effort to push your Wolf past his breaking point.â He clicked his tongue. âHis heart is still human, after all; and the human heart is so very malleable â so easily swayed by suggestion.â Douma shifted away from you and moved toward another tree. Bending quickly behind it, he lifted something from the ground, damp and sodden with both snow and your blood, and turned it over in his hands.
Your cloak. âI do apologize for helping myself,â he sighed, nose crinkling down at the rumpled fabric in distaste. âIt was such a darling little cloak. Iâm sure you must have been quite fond of it.â Your stomach folded in on itself and you began to tremble once more. It was not enough that Douma had stolen your biggest source of protection â and apparent damnation â clean from your shoulders before youâd regained consciousness. Now, the demon regarded your precious heirloom as though it was the key to some treasure only he knew how to find.
âI was quite kind, was I not?â Douma turned his attention back to you. âI allowed you both a few blissful weeks together â I let your bond deepen, and your love blossom like the most delicate of flowers.â He paused, looking at you expectantly like you were going to throw yourself before him in a simpering display of gratitude. When you did not, he frowned. âSurely, you should be grateful for the happiness Iâve permitted â it should comfort you to know that you will be free of the torment of your pitiful little existence having at least known the love of another, if only for a short while.â
âBut as for your beloved Huntsman,â he clicked his tongue, shaking his head mournfully. âHe shall have to grieve the loss of his sweet mate before he can assume his true form.â He looked back to you suddenly, eyes wide. âYou should be honored!â He said with an excitable gasp, clapping his hands together. âYour death shall free you both.â
Despite the frigid chill of the air, a cold sweat broke across your brow. Your lungs constricted to the point of pain as Doumaâs intentions settled over you with suffocating weight. No. Not him. Not Sanemi. âTake me,â you pled, quietly. âDo to me what you will â torture me, brutalize me, take me by force; devour me until not even my bones remain â but take me in his stead.â
Douma seemed to revel in your resignation as you slumped against the base of the tree in defeat, your head bowed in submission, but he made no movement toward you. âNo, my dear,â the accursed fae hummed. âAs tempting as I find you to be, one thing I did not consider in allowing you to whore yourself out to your Wolf was how it would affect your appeal.â
âYou smell revolting,â he explained with a sickly sweet smile. âIâve smelled mangy dogs that stink better than you.â That frozen, unnerving smile fell away. âIt is a shame,â Douma admitted, tilting your head from side to side. âYou are quite beautiful; no doubt fertile, even though your beloved Wolf failed to impregnate you.â
One taloned hand dragged down your front, squeezing. âAnd youâre very soft, my dear fiancĂ©,â his voice dropped to a coo. âDelectably so.â The Fae stood, brushing his hands off as though the mere act of touching you had soiled him. âPerhaps I will still take you once Iâve consumed your mate,â Douma said casually. âIf thereâs anything left of you to have, that is.â He looked to you in faux-concern, his eyebrows knit and mouth serious. âAfter all, the Netherwood is full of monsters, Y/N â there are so many beasts that would kill for a taste of your pretty flesh.â That mocking smile returned and Douma turned to leave, your cloak safely draped around his arm. âTake care!â He called over his shoulder, hand lifted in the air in farewell.
âDOUMA.â You shrieked after him, arms straining as you pulled against your restraints with all your might. âDOUMA.â But the Fae disappeared into the icy mist, and silence fell over the Netherwood once more.
â
The scent of lotus flowers had grown stronger â oppressively so â the more ground Sanemi covered. It was an odor he was sure heâd never before encountered, even if it felt vaguely familiar, though he could not, for the life of him, understand why. Though the stench of the aquatic blossoms made his nose sting, the Huntsman persisted, desperately clinging to the faint scent of juniper and clove which ran with it.
The fur on his back rose; he was drawing closer, he could feel it, even if he did not know what awaited him at the end of this trail. What he did know, however, was that his mate was likely harmed, and he would need to tread carefully in getting her back, no matter how much his instincts roared at him to find Douma and rip him limb from limb. But Sanemi kept her face in his mindâs eye as he nosed his satchel from where it was hung around his neck and shifted back to his human form. He dressed quickly, taking care to tuck his hand-axe into his belt. He resumed his trek, cautious, every one of his finely tuned instincts buzzing in his hypervigilance.
Something jerked in his gut, halting him in his tracks. The hair on the back of his neck stood straight, and his ears picked up on a subtle movement to his right. Though the moon had long since faded, with dawn rapidly approaching, he still watched the shadows between the trees, his eyes shining as he scanned the dark, and waited. An icy blast of wind cut through the silent, still trees of the Netherwood, stirring up a flurry of snowflakes where theyâd settled upon the earth. The frigid bite of the winter air tore right through the layers of Sanemiâs clothes, bruising him with its cold. From behind the ancient, gnarled trunks of the blackened, skeletal trees that surrounded him, came a thick, icy fog. Sanemi blinked rapidly in an effort to clear his vision, but the haze persisted, overwhelming his senses. Despite the prevalence of the fog, Sanemiâs heightened sense of sight was able to discern the faint outline of something dark and solid as it made its way toward him. As it drew closer, his stomach dipped with the realization that the shadow was not a thing, but a person.
The figure emerging through the mist was preceded only by the nauseatingly saccharine stench of lotus blossoms that made Sanemiâs gut twist and knot. Though heâd never laid eyes on the being now standing before him, with those unnerving, rainbow-hued eyes and hollow smirk, Sanemi knew heâd found him â Douma. And, it suddenly clicked why Doumaâs scent seemed familiar even if the leering figure before him was not. Magic. Doumaâs poisonously sweet stench was edged by the distinct fragrance of magic; one that heâd come to know intimately thanks to his Mateâs enchanted cloak. Horror, cold and violent, raked its talons down his spine. It was impossible; no man could carry the distinct aroma of magic with him, so entwined with his own essence as to make it nearly impossible to separate the two.
Only Douma wasnât a man. He was Fae; a demon Fae, at that.
The more Sanemi weighed his opponent, the more obvious it became. His skin was pallid and gray, his unnerving, multi-colored eyes too bright, too luminous against the muted darkness of the Wood. The Huntsman dropped his gaze to his long, spindly fingers stained dark red, and saw that they were tipped with wickedly sharp, black claws.
Doumaâs grin only widened, the tips of his upper fangs extending nearly to his lower lip. There was no doubt about it; somehow, in spite of logic, Douma was Fae and that changed everything about how Sanemi assessed the threat he posed. Worst of all, there was no sign of the mortal woman who held his heart.
âYou must be the Wolf who stole my dear betrothed away,â Doumaâs voice was as slimy as his presence, and Sanemi fought to suppress his shudder.
ââTis hard to steal what does not belong to you,â Sanemi retorted coldly. âI wasnât aware of any law that permits one to lay claim over another against their will.â
âHer grandmother accepted on her behalf,â Doumaâs lie was easy and smooth, and its obviousness made the Wolfâs blood boil. âThe girl broke the agreement struck between our houses by fleeing; I had the right to pursue her.â
Sanemi clenched his fists hard enough that his nails broke through the skin of his palms. He drew upon the resulting grounding throb to keep himself calm, to not take the bait the Fae was dangling to brazenly before him. âIf thatâs the case, then your grievance is with me,â He kept his voice calm, but firm. âAs the one who usurped your fiance. Thereâs no need for her to be involved at all.â The Huntsmanâs hand fell to the grip of his axe where it was secured safely against his hip. âLetâs settle this like reasonable men. You against me.â
âI am no more a man than you are, Wolf.â Doumaâs tone dripped with poisoned honey. âLet us not pretend otherwise â it would be so boring.â
Sanemi lifted a hand before him and flexed, allowing his own claws to punch through the tips of his fingers. âAs you wish, demon. But you crossed into my territory and stole one of my pack away. Return her and then we can play.â
Swirled, multicolored irises rose to meet him. âIâd heard the Wolvesâ borders were nearly impenetrable. You can imagine my disappointment when I found that not to be the case.â
âSo pretty,â Douma sighed. âShe was so very lovely in that red cloak of hers, picking flowers. Like something out of a dream. A chilling smile revealed four, sharp fangs. âShe was even more beautiful when she began trembling in fear.â
âI will kill you,â Sanemiâs promise was as cold and severe as his tone. âBut I might be inclined to make it less tortuous if you tell me where she is.â
Douma whistled lowly, shaking his head. âIâm afraid my fiancĂ© wonât be joining us, Wolf.â He strolled towards him, hands casually folded behind his back. He came to a still about two meters away, his stance relaxed; unbothered. âYouâll have to excuse her absence.â
âWhere is she?â Sanemi snarled, gripping the handle of his axe with crushing force.
âThe proper question isnât where,â the white-haired fae tutted. âIt is a matter of whatâs left.â Doumaâs eyes flashed. âAnd to that I say â not much.â
Sanemi felt as though heâd been plunged into an icy river, his body enveloped by a cold that would neither let him breathe nor move, rendering him helpless to be thrashed and broken against the rocks concealed beneath its rapids.
âI was beginning to think I was going to be denied what is mine, Wolf.â Douma continued, apparently oblivious to the anguish mounting within the Wolf before him. âBut luckily for me I found her wandering around the Wood â the silly girl, she must not realize how dangerous the Netherwood truly is.â The Faeâs voice softened slightly, a mocking smile revealing two pointed, sharp fangs. âSo dangerous, in fact, it seemed she let someone else stake their claim to her.â
âNot that I minded,â he shrugged. âAfter all, I knew from the moment I laid eyes on her in the village that she would make a delectable little bedmate.â His affectionate chuckle made Sanemiâs skin erupt in gooseflesh. âSo feisty â and so very beautiful.â Douma winked at the frozen Huntsman. âI understand now why you couldnât resist her, Wolf; that little body of hers was so delightfully soft and warm.â His eyes turned cruel and his smile widened. âAnd so very tight.â
The Wolfâs blood ran cold. No. No.
Douma covered his mouth in mock-shock. âOh! you will have to forgive me â I know wolves can be territorial when it comes to sharing their mates with others in that way,â he shook his head mournfully. âBut she was my fiancĂ© first â I had a right to claim her as well. I do hope you forgive me for taking that liberty.â
Sanemiâs heart lurched, his stomach twisting sickeningly in his gut. Beads of sweat gathered along his brow despite the frigid winter air. The rainbow-eyed fae savored his horror. âHuman women are so very delectable, donât you think?â He sighed dreamily. âSo good at satisfying both appetites.â Douma frowned for a moment, considering. âThough, I donât suppose youâve ever had a taste for yourself,â he laughed to himself, like heâd made the most amusing little joke. âAt least not in the way I like to taste them.â
âPerhaps you should give it a try!â Douma clapped his hands together in amusement. âAfter all, fertile human women are the most nutritious.â
Sanemi knees nearly buckled and Doumaâs demented smile twisted into something cruel.
âShe didnât scream, you know, while I was enjoying her.â There was a cold malice in his eyes that made Sanemi want to run no matter how firmly the faeâs words rooted him where he stood. âNot so much as a little moan to let me know how well I was fucking her.â The monster with the kaleidoscope eyes shrugged, nonchalantly. âThough, that could have been because she was too busy trying to fight my men. She was a squirmer, your mate â Iâm sure you knew that.â Doumaâs clawed fingers twirled a lock of his silvery hair, his feline grin nothing short of predatory. âBut they managed to hold her down well enough.â
âI was so close â your little mateâs cunt was still so sweet, even after she let you defile her.â Doumaâs smile was nothing short of vicious, his voice dropping to a growl. âBut when I finally tasted her â oh.âThe faeâs eyes slid closed, as if in bliss, as he recalled the memory, shuddering in delight.âThen she started screaming,â Doumaâs grin widened. âThey all start screaming when I taste them.â He sighed. âShe didnât last much longer after that â I started with the neck, after all. Right on that little mark you gave her.â
A sickening grin. âBut she did hold on long enough for me to finish. The same couldnât be said for that little friend of hers I had before.â Douma wrinkled his nose. âI had to finish after Iâd already consumed her.â He waved his hands placatingly at the shaking Wolf. âOh, but please donât worry!â His voice was pleading, as though he wanted to soothe Sanemi. âShe still only had feelings for you! After all, it was your name she screamed.â
Sanemi could hardly control the tremble in his voice. âYouâre lying.â
Even the muted light of day could not conceal the glint of Doumaâs fangs as his grin widened. âIt is a shame you think so,â the Fae simpered. âI suppose, then, you have no interest in this?â
There was a flash of red as Douma tossed something mishappen and lumpy at the Wolf. Without breaking eye contact, Sanemiâs hand lifted up and snatched it easily out of the air. He held Doumaâs gaze for a heartbeat longer, before finally looking down at what he held in his hands. The tense breath heâd been holding wheezed out of his lungs at the sight of Y/Nâs all too familiar scarlet riding cloak; or rather, what was left of it. The fabric was dirtied and torn, its edges and ends shredded as though it had been caught by something sharp â like claws. Or, Sanemi realized with a sickening wave of horror, like teeth.
He turned the cloak over in his hands, as though perhaps his mate was somehow tangled up within its folds. Sanemiâs heart seized as he realized his beloved Y/N was not hiding among the remaining threads of her cherished, tattered heirloom.
But something else of hers was; her blood. A great deal of it. It had dried in crusted patches along the crimson wool, blending in with the other dirt and grime coating the material; but the scent of iron was unmistakably hers. Sanemiâs eyes were wide and unfocused as he clutched the remnants of the cloak â of his mate â to his chest with trembling hands. Gone. Gone. She was gone. Just a sunrise and a half earlier, sheâd been safe and warm in his arms, and now she was gone.
âIt is a shame, though,â Douma confessed mournfully. âThat you failed to impregnate lovely little Y/N before I found her.â The Faeâs lower lip stuck out in a mocking pout, oblivious to the way Sanemi shook with rage. âI so wanted to know what a pregnant woman tasted like â especially one carrying a little mutt.â
Had the Wolf anything in his stomach, it surely would have made a reappearance all over the forest floor. The idea that the monstrous creature smirking at him would have defiled something so sacred, something he and his mate so wanted â
Every one of Doumaâs fangs were revealed as a sickening smile spread wide across his face. âIt matters not; Iâve never been so full in my life â her flesh was a succulent little treat.â
Even the wind seemed to still as Sanemiâs eyes snapped to the Faeâs savage grin.
âJust like her cunt.â
The Huntsmanâs vision went white as something vicious and primordial roared to life in his chest. A splitting, piercing screech echoed in his ears, drowning out the gleeful peals of laughter from the direction of the demon Fae, and the Wood around him fell away into nothing.
Somewhere, deep within himself, Sanemi stood before the open mouth of an iron cell. He could sense something stirring in the dark; but whatever door had kept the thing locked tightly away had been ripped clean from its hinges, and now, the Huntsman was left utterly before its mercy, though he could not for the life of him remember why he should care.
Because Sanemi could not stop the images assaulting his mind. He could not stop seeing her, face screwed tight in pain and anguish, as Doumaâs men held down her arms and legs, trapping her as their leader had his way with her.
Sheâd screamed; sheâd screamed as Douma violated her again and again, all while his teeth ripped into her flesh and he devoured her alive. Sheâd screamed for her mate to come help her; to come protect her and save her, the way a mate was supposed to protect and keep safe.
Sheâd screamed for him.
I swear it. Heâd vowed to her. I will not allow him to lay a finger on you.
He hadnât come. He hadnât heard her, hadnât been able to feel her desperate pleas and cries and pain down the mating bond. He hadnât even known. Sheâd died alone; scared. And now, there was nothing left of her.
Beneath the rage that boiled beneath his skin, making him tremble and shake where he stood, Sanemi despaired, lost and broken. Somewhere, buried so deep in Sanemiâs psyche, a voice told him to give in; to let his curse take him over completely, and rip the fae before him limb from limb, to shred him until there was nothing of him left, just like heâd done to her. It was easy â so easy, for him to give into that instinct, so base and primal; to allow the beast heâd kept locked deep within out. He would do it to avenge her; avenge his mate.
Y/Nâs face was the last thing he saw before Sanemi let the curse of the Werewolf consume him entirely.
--
The iron manacles Douma had snapped around your wrists werenât conjoined â a fact you were grateful for. Rather, each shackle was connected to its own, heavy chain that he had looped tightly around the base of an ancient, gnarled oak tree that towered ominously over your head. There was a small sliver of space between the crude, thick metal of the iron cuffs and your wrist. You agonized over trying to worm at least one hand through the gap, certain that if you could get one hand free, the other would take only half as long.
You gripped the manacle of your right hand with your left and pulled, pushing the metal as you tried desperately to wiggle out of the cuff. The iron dug sharply into your wrists, the rough edges chafing your cold-sensitive skin. The outer curve of your thumb caught against the rim of the bind and your hand would not move further. You pulled and pulled until your right hand turned nearly purple with the strain, your teeth clenched so tight you feared they would crack as a frustrated scream tore from your throat.
âDamn it all!â You swore, arms relaxing for a moment while you caught your breath. The longer it took you to work yourself free of Doumaâs chains, the more likely your chances of being sniffed out and devoured by one of the Netherwoodâs beasts became. But your looming, grisly death in the maw of one of the Woodâs resident nightmares was the least of your concerns. Sanemi was in trouble; you had to get to him before Douma found him. Before he triggered the curse.
You shook your aching wrist in frustration, tugging sharply at the chains around the base of the tree in a half-hearted hope that perhaps Douma was, in fact, an imbecile, who neglected to secure them properly. But he wasnât, you realized grimly, for the chains did not so much as loosen against all your tireless efforts.
Your eyes burned with frustrated tears that you knew better than to let fall. You couldnât give up; not when it had been your own stupidity which had landed you in this mess in the first place. Not when it could easily lead to the death of the person you loved most. You took two, steadying breaths and rolled your shoulders, glaring down at the iron shackles locked around your wrists. After another moment, you turned towards the tree around which youâd been trapped. You pushed the excess chain against its base before placing one foot firmly against its rotted bark, trapping the iron chain beneath your heel. You twisted your right hand into the position you thought would give you the best chance of slipping free from your restraint and took one last breath. On the exhale, you pulled with every ounce of strength you possessed, a scream ripping through the silence of the Wood as the metal bit into your skin. It did you no good. On and on you continued, yanking and twisting and pulling at your manacles until the skin of your wrists turned bloody and ragged, the flesh in some places hanging off in ruined strips. Below you, the snow had turned an unsettling pinkish-red, and with no small amount of nausea did you realize you were making it even more likely some creature would sniff you out and tear you apart.
You kicked the base of the tree. âFuck!â You snarled, spitefully stomping a few more times on the chains binding you to its bark. âFuck!â
The issue wasnât that your hands were too big to slide through the cuffs â rather, you felt almost certain that if given a little grease or sweat, you might just be able to slip them out. The problem was that here, in the middle of the frozen, snowy Wood, there was no such lubricant to be found. Furthermore, you realized as you grimaced down at your ruined wrists, there was an additional problem posed by the bones of your thumbs. That was where the manacles snagged every time you nearly pulled yourself free; those damn thumb joints.
You had no idea how much time had passed since Douma had strutted away, leaving you for dead in favor of seeking out your mate, but you knew that every minute which passed you by brought Sanemi closer and closer to catastrophe; and that was assuming it had not already befallen him. Douma had taken everything from you; he could not have Sanemi, too.
You cast your eyes wildly around the forest floor, looking for anything that could aid your escape. You were about to resort to your earlier approach of attempting to force your wrists from the manacles once more, when you landed on a small cluster of rocks, just to your left.
You cocked your head in consideration. Tentatively, you stuck your leg out to the one closest to where you were shackled and used the toe of your boot to pull it towards you. Once it was within reach of your aching hands, you picked it up and turned it over in thought. The stone was a little larger than one of your hands, and heavy. It had a decent amount of ridges and its edges were sharp, but it was solid, and not too difficult to hold. Your eyes flitted back to your other hand, bruised and torn and limp under the weight of the iron. An idea, terrible and horrifying as it was, began to bloom in your mind.
Sanemi had given everything he had to protect you; heâd put his life on the line for you after knowing you for a matter of minutes, without hesitation. Time and time again, the Huntsman had sacrificed his well-being to give you a fighting chance here in the Netherwood.
What had you done, aside from being his biggest liability?
Your fingers clenched around the heavy stone as you made up your mind, fiery determination running hot through your veins. It was time to repay Sanemi for all of his sacrifice and selfless acts of love.
You knelt upon the frozen ground of the Netherwood and laid your left hand against the earth, your thumb facing up. Your right arm trembled as it rose high above your head, but your fingers tightened around the stone, allowing the grit of the sediment to steady you. You remained like that for a moment; huddled over your hand, the other poised high in the winter sky as you summoned every last ounce of your courage and nerve.
You closed your eyes briefly, inhaling once and holding your breath. Once you counted to ten, you opened your eyes with renewed focus. A deafening hush fell over the Netherwood, as though the very trees themselves waited with bated breath.
A lamb no longer; it was time to be a wolf.
Your arm cleaved through the winter air as you brought down the rock with all your might and smashed it into your hand below.
--
Newly freed, the sharp winter air burned your lungs with every heaving gasp you took as you stumble-ran through the Netherwood. Your feet caught on nearly every upturned rock and tree root protruding from the frozen earth below you, but you would not allow yourself to fall. Instead, adrenaline, hot and sweet allowed your legs to keep moving, kept your brain focused and sharp even as the world around you swirled as a result of your blood loss.That adrenaline also helped to dull whatever pain you knew you should feel at the ends of your arms, where your hands hung limply from your wrists. Purple and bloodied, your bones jutted out at odd angles from your repeated blows with the heavy stone youâd found.
In retrospect, perhaps the decision to liberate yourself from your bonds by shattering your hands hadnât been your finest plan of action; especially considering you had no idea where Sanemi could be in the endless expanse of thickly clustered trees that made up the cursed forest. But that decision had been better than simply waiting for some man-eating monster to stumble upon you, chained and helpless against some rotting tree, and so, you could not allow yourself to regret your choice. Even if it meant you never fully recovered the use of your hands.
Regardless, you couldnât worry about that now; Sanemi was the priority. And to save him, you first had to survive getting through the Wood, a feat made all the more difficult in the absence of your grandmotherâs cloak. Without its protection, it was even more likely that you would fall victim to one of the monstrous creatures that assuredly watched you as you struggled through the trees, waiting for you to slow down enough to ambush you and sate the hunger in their belly.
You cursed as your foot caught on yet another tree root that threatened to send you sprawling across the dirt without the ability to even catch yourself. By some divine intervention, you managed to steady yourself just before you hit the ground, though your thighs ached under the strain of your attempt to remain upright. The dark outline of the Wood grew blurrier by the moment. Briefly, you wondered whether you would pass out from the combination of your exhaustion and blood loss. So concentrated were you on trying to push yourself forward, on forcing yourself to remain upright and in motion, that you did not hear the crack of branches under foot, nor the rustle of leaves as something made its way toward you; not until it was too late.
A piercing howl echoed through the Woods, sending you ricocheting into mindless hysteria. You made to dart around a tree in a feeble attempt to evade whatever it was that had cornered you, but instead of escaping, you slammed into something solid and warm. The force of the collision sent you stumbling back, but before you could fall, something else shot out, gripping your forearm and yanking you back to steady footing. But the thing that had you in its grasp would not let go, and it sparked a new panic in your blood as you began struggling to wrench yourself free from its grip, to run -
A startled, urgent gasp of your name snapped you out of your panicked trance. Your head snapped up to meet the face of the thing â the person â standing with his hand around your arm, your eyes blinking rapidly as you tried to focus. At the familiar sight of mowhaked black hair and wide, anxious violet eyes, you loosed a cry of relief and flung your arms tightly around his neck. Genyaâs arms hung frozen at his sides for a moment before hesitantly, but firmly, winding around you.
âGenya!â You gasped, âwhere is Sanemi?â Your voice sounded foreign, dry enough to crack thanks to the harsh winter air youâd been gulping down yet shrill with panic.
You half pushed yourself over his shoulders by your forearms, frantically scanning the tree line behind him for the sight of that familiar mop of snowy hair, but the face of your home was nowhere to be seen.
âY/N â thank the gods ââ
You pulled away, eyes wild. âWhere is your brother?â
The young Wolf blinked rapidly. âH-he â we picked up t-two scents,â his eyes raked over your bloodied, beaten form in horror. âHe f-followed the trail that was strongest ââ
You swore loud enough to startle a few birds from their perch nearby. Your legs were shaking hard enough that your knees buckled. Genya shifted, allowing you to lean into him for support. His hands slid down your forearms as he scanned you for further injury. His face drained of what little color remained. âS-sister, your hands â â
âDonât worry about that right now,â you pulled your arms away from him in an effort to conceal your ruined hands from sight. âCan you track him? Can you find his scent?â
Genya gulped. âY-yeah,â his nostrils widened. âBut youâre b-bleeding so badly â you need help,â
But you were already shaking your head. âGenya, we need to go,â you pushed away from the boy and walked aimlessly around him , as though you had any clue as to what direction to pursue your mate. âWe have to find him, we have to get to him before he does ââ
The younger Wolf sputtered as he stumbled after you. A gentle hand closed delicately around your bicep, tugging lightly to turn you back around. âSister, youâre wounded. We n-need to get you to a doctor ââ
âNo!â You cried. If you could have shaken him, you would have. âWe have to find your brother â quickly.â
Genya looked pained. âY/N, youâve been missing for over a day â youâre barely standing ââ
Panic bubbled the more you lost precious time. âGenya, Douma wasnât after me,â you rested your forearms on his shoulders, attempting to squeeze him until he understood. âAt least, I am no longer his priority â itâs Sanemi â Sanemiâs cursed form he wants to devour.â
The dark-haired Wolfâs eyes grew wide. âY-you mean make him become the Werewolf?â He shook his head, his hand trying to tug you back in what you assumed was the opposite direction â toward safety and not Sanemi. âThatâs impossible, the curse is sealed, Y/N â please, we need to go ââ
âYouâre not listening to me!â You exploded. âDouma â heâs going to unseal it somehow. He knows, Genya,â with a wince, you placed your purpled hands on either side of the boyâs face in a silent plea for him to understand. âHe broke the mating bond with just a finger â he can do worse because he knows worse.â
Genya finally halted his desperate attempt to get you out of the Wood. The poor boy looked tortured, and his breath was choppy and hard.
âSanemi once told me it would take something extremely traumatic for your seal to break â something that would make you want to give up your humanity,â and Genyaâs eyes widened slightly as he nodded jerkily. âThink, Genya â what would trigger his curse? What would push him that far?â
The younger Shinazugawa was quiet for a moment, his eyes falling to the snow-covered floor of the Wood in thought. His face turned gray. âYou,â he whispered. âIf anything happened to you â I donât think Brother would think twice about giving into the curse.â Â
Everything inside you went cold as Genyaâs admission settled over you. You stumbled back from the boy, head spinning and the world threatening to disappear out from under your feet. Genya called your name worriedly, his hands wrapping around your biceps to steady you, as he tried to pull you back to reality.
âBut youâre still alive ââ the words tumbled from his mouth in a panicked jumble, as though the young Wolf was trying to convince himself that their situation was not nearly as dire as it undoubtedly was. âThe bond broke, but youâre still here. Sanemi could track your scent in another direction ââ
You froze. There was one way Douma could convince the Huntsman that something horrible had happened to you â something that, when coupled with the severed mating bond, could force him to believe the Fae had done the unthinkable. âMy cloak,â you whispered in horror. âHe took my cloak. And it is covered in my blood.â
Genyaâs expression contorted to match your own frozen terror. For a moment, all you could do was stare at one another, breaths panting out in small, rapid puffs clouding the frigid winter air.
âYou must take me to him,â you said flatly. The younger Wolf opened his mouth to protest, but you cut him off. âGenya, if Sanemi believes I am dead, nothing you do or say will convince him otherwise. He needs to see me.â
He blanched. âY/N â please, itâs dangerous,â he pled. âWeâve only ever heard tales of what a Werewolf is capable of doing â if Sanemi loses control like that, he may not be able to tell friend from foe.â
You stepped closer to him, eyes blazing. âIf you can get me there before Douma has a chance to spin his lies, then we wonât have to worry about the curse at all.â
He hesitated again. âSister ââ
âI am not asking.â
Genya shifted his weight anxiously from foot to foot as his logic warred with the severity of your command.
âI will do it,â he said quietly after a moment. âBut if Aniki has already begun his transformation â you canât go near him. You must let me deal with him.â
You nodded and tried to ignore the guilt you felt at the reproachful look in his eyes; for you both knew that you would not hesitate throwing yourself in front of your mate, no matter the risk. With a grimace, Genya retreated behind a cluster of elmwood trees. All was quiet for a moment before a large wolf stepped out hesitantly from the shadows. Genyaâs wolf form was slightly larger than his elder brotherâs, though he possessed the same brawn. His fur was an inky black that bordered violet in the watery gray light of winter, and slightly curly; but his eyes were the same glowing silver as Sanemiâs.
One massive paw stepped cautiously forward. A sharp exhale of air was tinged by a small whine as Genya looked mournfully at your mottled hands. He lowered his body until he lay flat against the ground, a single wag of his tail signaling you to climb atop his back. You braced your forearms between his shoulder blades, wincing slightly at the sharp, bone-splintering ache in your hands as your bruised and blistered skin brushed against his fur. You clambered on top of the young Wolf awkwardly, throwing your leg over his side to use as an anchor until you could wiggle yourself into a position that felt vaguely proper.
You leaned forward until your chest was pressed against his back and you wound your arms around his thick neck. âIâm ready,â you whispered. âHurry, Genya.â
The younger Shinazugawa chuffed his acknowledgment before crouching low. With a great jolt, the Wolf sprang forward and launched into a fierce sprint through the Netherwood. As the trees around you melted into an endless blur, you cast out a single, desperate wish that you would not be too late.
--
Genya crashed through the Wood at a break-neck speed, howling every so often as he searched for his brother. Your panic began to melt into pure hysteria, when the young Wolf suddenly slowed, his ears perked as he listened to what you could not hear.
He growled, and your heart leapt into your throat. âIs it him, Genya?â
The Wolf huffed and launched into a sprint, forcing you to press yourself flat against his back. The winter wind was brutal and unforgiving, but you only set your jaw, the direness of your circumstances more painful than the icy gale that ripped at your hair and face.
Genya began to slow and you chanced pushing yourself up to see over his great head. Though winter Wood remained muted and dark even as the first rays of the morning sun trickled through the small gaps in the canopies of the trees above, the identity of the two figures that stood in a small clearing only a few meters ahead, was unmistakable. On one side was the loathsome Fae, identifiable from the odd style of his silvery hair. On the other, was him â your mate. Your Sanemi.
The scene before you was odd â unsettling so, as you hurriedly slid off Genyaâs back and began stumbling toward your Huntsman. The Fae and the Wolf were not engaged in any battle; rather, there remained a healthy distance between the two. As you drew closer, it became obvious why; Sanemi was trembling â violently so, his head thrown back and his mouth stretched open. Heavy, choked gasps rattled out from his throat, and his hands were held out before him, their joints locked and contorted into odd angles.
Dread licked up your spine. You were too late; his curse had already been triggered.
âSanemi!â You called desperately as you crashed through the brush. Douma stood with his back to you, eyes locked gleefully on your mateâs rippling form. âSanemi!â You made to shove past the excitable Fae, but a clawed hand shot out before you were clear, gripping you sharply by the hair and wrenching you back against his chest. A hand rose before you to grip you by your cheeks, forcing you to watch the way your Huntsman violently trembled.
âLook, Y/N,â Doumaâs cold, malicious voice hissed in your ear. âWatch as the beast slips his chains.â
You thrashed against his hold, but the Fae only chuckled, his icy, rancid breath sending violent chills down your skin. âRun, little girl,â he crooned. âRun to your Wolf, and see if he wonât tear you apart.â With a shove, Douma sent you stumbling forward. You obeyed his command, desperate to reach your mate as he shuddered under the strain of his curse.
âSister, no!â Genya cried, but it was of no use; without hesitation you flung your arms around your mateâs rippling form, trying to still him.
âSanemi, stop!â You cried. âDonât do this â fight the curse ââ
The Wolfâs claws had grown longer and sharper than youâd ever seen. You squeezed your eyes shut tight as Sanemiâs hands rose up on either side of you before his claws sunk deep into your biceps. Your breath wheezed out of you at the sharp pain exploding beneath where his nails were embedded into your flesh. Your stomach dropped at the unmistakable sensation of your blood running hot down your arms, but you still did not relent.
âSanemi! Please!â You clung to him desperately, trying to force him to look at you, but it was useless. His eyes had gone a milky white, his fangs longer than youâd ever seen, saliva dripping from his mouth like that of a rabid animal. You hiked your arms higher around his trembling shoulders, trying to ignore the sting of his claws dragging along your skin so you could wrench his head down and press his face against your ruined mating mark. Perhaps if he could scent it, whatever remained of it, he would come back to himself â perhaps he wouldnât let the beast within take control.
It wasnât working. You shook him, desperate and frustrated. âItâs me â I have returned! Iâm sorryâ Iâm so sorry I made you worry!â Tears welled in your eyes. âPlease come back to me!â
Sanemiâs claws dug deeper into your arms, your blood staining your sleeves a deep crimson. âGone,â he managed to snarl through the growls and choked sounds of his body undergoing the sinister shift to his cursed form. âSheâs gone.â
Beneath that vicious growl was pain â raw and deep. It did not matter that you were standing right there before him; he could not see you, not when heâd begun to turn into a Werewolf without a mate.
âIâm here! Iâm right here!â Tears rolled freely down your cheeks as you urged him to see, to know you once more. âIâm with you! Please, Sanemi, I love you â Iâm begging you, please, please come back to me!â
He tried to push you from him, his claws retracting from where heâd buried them into your skin. âGone!â he howled. âGONE.â
âSanemi â NO!â You shrieked as he shoved you back, but it was not enough. The Huntsman exploded, fur and claws and teeth erupting from him as Sanemi fully let the Werewolf take him over.
There was a flash of something curved and sharp as it neared your face. Half a heartbeat later, there was nothing but pain; hot, agonizing, searing pain erupting down the side of your face, as you felt yourself being torn open.
Your scream reverberated through the Netherwood like a cannon blast. You dropped to the ground like a marionette doll whose strings had been cut, hands jumping to your face only to meet sticky, hot blood and ragged pieces of your torn flesh.You laid there, crumpled against the snow, broken hands pressed desperately to the left side of your face in an attempt to stop the bleeding. You couldnât even assess the damage, as you had to throw yourself out of the way to avoid being caught in the jaws of the creature now lunging for Douma. As the flurry of white passed you, you caught glimpse of the beastâs crimson-soaked claw.
Soaked, with your blood. Sanemiâs claw had caught you right down the left side of your face as heâd transformed, ripping it wide open.
Genya screamed your name, but his anguish was lost under the howling, vicious snarls from the snapping Werewolf and the crazed, giddy peals of laughter from the demon fae.
It was hard to see, and you knew you couldnât risk moving your hands from the flayed side of your face for fear of bleeding out all over the floor of the Wood. But your other eye also filled with blood that spilled over your nose from the marred side of your face, leaving you to blink rapidly in a desperate attempt to lock eyes on your mate as he battled.
Vaguely, you were able to see a white mass swiping and snapping its massive jaws at the giddy Fae. While youâd known Sanemiâs Wolf form was massive â larger than a horse â the Werewolf was at least two times the size of your mate when fully shifted. Each of its limbs were nearly as long as you were, and covered in thick, ropey muscle. Your vision clouded red once again and you rapidly blinked, wincing at the strain the movement made against your wound. It was getting difficult to hold your head up, the pain excruciating. A helpless cry sounded weakly from the back of your throat as you rolled over, putting your back to the savage confrontation that raged on.
A new set of snarls joined the fray, and distantly, you realized Genya must have joined the fight with his brother. Doumaâs exalted peals of laughter melted into vicious snarls of his own as he fronted attacks from two opponents rather than one.
At least the young Wolf was able to do something. Youâd never felt more useless than you did right then, curled pathetically against the snowy floor of the Netherwood, broken and bleeding out. But then a sudden yelp of pain tore from the fray, and you flipped over just in time to spot a mass of black fur â Genya â being sent flying back from the embattled Fae and Werewolf. Your feeble wail of despair went unanswered as Genya slammed against the base of a distant tree before thudding heavily to the forest floor. He did not move again.
Fucked; you were all fucked.
You clenched your jaw tight, clamping down on the frustrated sob building in your chest. How utterly pathetic you were, helpless to do anything but lay there in the Wood and die. Your mangled hand did little to staunch the blood spilling over your nose and your mouth, running in thick rivulets over the unharmed side of your face. The hot, coppery liquid dripped down to your opposite ear before it began to slide down your chin and throat. It would not be long before your blood would begin to pool beneath you. Bitterly, you mused how it would be just your luck that some other creature would creep out from the shadows, unable to resist the tempting smell of fresh blood and finish you off, as the demon fae and Werewolf continued their battle across the way.
Before you could fully resign to your fate as some beastâs evening meal âa fate youâd so assiduously tried to avoid before dooming not just yourself but your mate as well â a sudden burn at the juncture of your neck and shoulder erupted, sending hot flames of agony licking across your skin. You want to laugh at the relentless cruelty of your pain. It was not enough that, in the matter of two days, you had been beaten, slashed, and mauled beyond hope. No, the universe apparently thought it just to now turn your blood into flame that seared the skin where Sanemiâs mark had once been â
Your breath snagged violently in your throat. The mark.
By blood it is done, and by blood it is undone.
Your blood â fresh blood â had run and gathered right against the ruined crescent shaped mating mark that Douma had broken with his magic; magic that had used your blood to sever the link between you and Sanemi.
You coughed weakly, the blood bubbling between your lips as your skin burned hotter and hotter. But then you felt it â that familiar, honeyed warmth that began to trickle through your veins, filling in the ragged hole that had been left by the cessation in connection to your mate.
You wanted to call out to him â to Sanemi, but all that left you was a gurgled cry as the mating bond between you and the snarling Werewolf snapping at the demon fae in the distance reignited once more.
ââ
Everything was dark; cold. Sanemi felt as though heâd been submerged in a sea of frigid, black water that stretched endlessly around him.There was no end and no beginning to the void in which heâd plunged himself, and Sanemi couldnât find it within himself to care; couldnât feel much of anything, to be honest. There was no reason for him to fight; to live. The Werewolf was the manifestation of his rage â it would exact his revenge and then roam the earth without aim and without purpose, just as he deserved. He would remain there, curled into himself as he floated alone amidst the silent, dark expanse of his infinite despair. For there could be no light â no warmth â without her.
Time passed, though he did not know how much, nor did he care. He only burrowed deeper into the dark, content to ignore the distant echoes and snarls of the battle raging above the surface of this empty sea in which he drowned. Hopeless. Hopeless. It was all hopeless.
Despite the suffocating numbness of his black prison, Sanemi swore he could feel something pulling at him. He thought to ignore it, assuming it was nothing more than an echo of what once was, a phantom tug at a string tied to a future that would never be his.
And yet, the tugging grew stronger, the string tauter, demanding acknowledgment. He wanted to growl at it; to snap his teeth in warning, for he could not give it the attention it commanded. The Werewolf was in charge now, not him; the string could take it up with the beast above. Black water swelled up around him before exploding into flame, and Sanemi suddenly found himself in a sea of fire that set every nerve of his body alight. His eyelashes singed from the fireâs heat, but he could not close his eyes, could not turn away from the hot, rippling agony which now consumed him.
He shouldnât have felt it â he hadnât sensed any of the movements or strain of the Werewolf's battle the entire time it had blazed on, so there was no reason for him to feel such intense, blinding pain now. But he did. His traitorous heart lurched with a hope he desperately tried to stamp out; but then, above the flames roaring around him and licking at his skin, rose smoke scented with clove and juniper. The smell of home â a home heâd believed had been torn apart and devoured. The smell of her. The string at the back of his mind pulled tight, frantic and desperate, begging him to swim, to claw his way to the surface and fight. Fight for her â for himself. For them.
With a defiant roar, Sanemi tore into the inky, bottomless sea with his talons and fangs, clawing for it â for the beast. He met matted fur and began to rip fistfuls of it, ripping through flesh and sinew in great, vicious fistfuls that snarled and snapped its jaws at him. Sanemi laughed savagely as the beast bucked under the onslaught of his rage, each ruthless movement weakening the creature bit by bit.
A vicious claw ripped the darkness around him wide open, revealing a sliver of light, and trees, and the dull grayness of winter. Sanemi howled as he clambered for the opening, the beast snapping ferociously at his heels, desperate to drag him back into the dark pits of his own hell. But Sanemi did not relent; he kicked back, his foot meeting the solid mass of the beast with a sickening crunch, and the Werewolf fell away, and the Huntsman launched himself through the vale.
One moment Sanemi saw only the fire signifying his bond with his mate, and the next he was in the Netherwood, struggling against the iron-tight grip of the fae at his back, working to crush his neck with his brute force. Sanemi twisted and bucked in Doumaâs sinewy arms. The brief moment of hesitation heâd had in retaking control over his own body had given the fae the opening he needed to wrench free from the hold of the Wolfâs jaws, trapping Sanemi in his own death grip as a result. The faeâs arms wound around his neck and squeezed with brutish force, twisting and jerking in an effort to crush him. Sanemiâs paws clawed uselessly at open air, unable to land any decisive blows that would give him even the slightest advantage.
It was over â it was over, and heâd failed, heâd lost, and Y/N, wherever she was, would be doomed as well once Douma finished him off â
The Faeâs death grip around Sanemiâs neck suddenly loosened as Douma began to scream in both fury and pain. Twisting away from the demonâs convulsing form, Sanemi watched as Genya, whoâd launched himself from the line of trees at Doumaâs back, sunk his teeth right into the fleshy juncture between the Faeâs neck and shoulder and tore one of his arms clean from his body. Before the disembodied limb could thud uselessly to the Woodâs snowy floor, Genyaâs great maw closed around Doumaâs newly vulnerable side and began tearing away chunks of his flesh in great, heaving mouthfuls.
Not ready to repeat his earlier mistake, Sanemi twisted quickly around and lunged for the Faeâs head. Before the demonâs howl of rage and anguish could finish cleaving the Netherwood into two, the white Wolf locked his jaws around the soft exposure of Doumaâs neck and Sanemi ripped his throat wide open. Inky, black blood sprayed across the Wolfâs face and flooded his mouth with its filth. Sanemi paid little mind to the oily, rancid taste of the faeâs cursed blood as it slid down his throat and dripped from his maw. On and on he rampaged, turning the Fae into nothing more than a few nondescript piles of pulped flesh, each chunk of skin more indiscernible from the last as Doumaâs carnage was strewn across the Netherwood.
Time dragged on, and while eventually Sanemiâs teeth stopped tearing at the Faeâs corpse, his claws did not. Every swipe of his paws was vicious and brutal, but even they began to dull as Sanemi continued to reduce what was left of the demon to a blood pile of rotten, shredded meat. The sharp, deadly curve of his claws gradually retreated, blunting and rounding out until his fingers and hands resembled that of a manâs, curled tight into a pair of fists that dealt alternating blow after blow into the gore that had once been the fae pinned below him. The shudder that rippled through him barely registered as Sanemiâs fur and teeth and claws gave way to scarred flesh and blood-soaked hair. The only thing on him that remained of the Wolf was its cold snarl which kept his lips curled back, his teeth, bared.
âAniki,â his younger brotherâs weak, tired voice broke through the hazy fury of his mind, but it was not enough to slow the rain of Sanemiâs fists against the shards of bone and scraps of flesh splattered across the snow. âBrother. Sanemi.â Genyaâs human hand shakily reached to clasp Sanemi by the shoulder. âBrother, Y/N â s-she needs ââ
A gasp tore free from the Huntsmanâs throat, one bloodied, bruised fist halting midair as Sanemiâs full awareness returned to him. Y/N. His mate; his fiance. She was alive â she had to be. Otherwise, Sanemi wouldnât have felt that string pulling him back to the bond; back to himself.
âWhere,â Sanemi sat back on his haunches, chest heaving and arms shaking with exertion. âWhere is she.â
The look of horror on Genyaâs face nearly stopped his thundering heart cold. âY-you donât rememberâŠ?â His brotherâs voice was drowned out by the sudden ringing in his ears as the wind howling through the Netherwood shifted. Suddenly, Sanemi became all too aware of the overpowering scent of iron clogging the air. Only this iron carried not the oily stench of the demon fae heâd helped reduce to pulp. No. This scent â this blood â was entirely too familiar; and entirely too close.
He spied paw prints â large, monstrous tracks trailing through the snow, leading right to where he and his brother had dueled with Douma. Sanemi felt leaden dread press down upon his lungs, threatening to choke him, as his eyes raked over scarlet-streaked slush, packed down into the distinct outline of his own cursed claw prints. His nostrils flared and everything within him turned to ice. There was no doubt to whom the blood belonged.
Sanemi looked up to his brother, his eyes wide and desperate. âWhat did I do?â
Genyaâs face was the portrait of tortured devastation. Sanemi knew, as he watched his brotherâs features crumple, that whatever had transpired in the time between him losing his humanity and the mating bond snapping back into place, was a hell entirely of his own making.
âWhat did I do?â He repeated, though whether the was pleading to his brother, to the Netherwood, or to the gods themselves, he could not say. âWhat did I do? What did I do?â
The panic built hot in his gut, and the Huntsman began to hyperventilate. She shouldnât have been there; her blood shouldnât have been smeared all over the snow, painting the winter landscape a violent crimson. But there was no mistaking it; as much as the Huntsman willed the opposite to be true, he could not change the fact that somehow, some way, this small clearing deep within the Netherwood had been coated with his mateâs blood.
And it had not been there before; not when he arrived. Not when he let the Werewolf exact his revenge.
Sanemi looked frantically around the wreckage of Wood, eyes wild as they scanned for any sign of her. There, about five meters ahead, he spotted her bloodied, unmoving form. A strangled howl of despair tore from his throat as he tried to rush for her, but Genya caught him sharply around the bicep. The boyâs face was tortured, and it only made Sanemiâs desperation increase tenfold. âAniki â wait ââ
Sanemi tore free of Genyaâs grip with an anguished roar, stumbling over his legs in his haste to get to her, curled against the forest floor. He almost fell as he scrambled towards her, snow kicking up in a flurry of powder as he half ran, half-dragged himself to where she lay, limp and broken.
âY/N!â His voice cracked, and his arms slid under her, pulling her across his lap and cradling her against his chest as he knelt in the snow. She whimpered, her hands still pressed tightly against the wounded half of her face, blood running thickly between the seams of her black and red stained fingers. Sanemiâs hands shook as they coveted hers. âLet me see,â he said hoarsely, pulling lightly. âLet me see it, Y/N.â
She did not pull her hands away entirely, instead choosing to lift them only a few millimeters; just enough that the water gray light of the winter sky should have trickled through the gaps between her fingers. But she moved them enough to reveal the oozing, bloody wound. Sanemiâs breath caught violently in his throat, and his heart stuttered to a halt in his chest. With wide-eyed and sickening dread Sanemi beheld the four, thick jagged lines of dark scarlet which had ripped his mateâs face open, shreds of her flesh hanging to the sides in blooded, torn scraps.
Where her eye should have been was nothing but a dark, gaping and bloodied hole.
At first, she seemed not to have realized the extent of what happened - of what heâd done. Her face contorted and with horror, Sanemi realized she was trying to blink, as though attempting to clear something that clouded her sight. Her right eye squinted and strained, darting wildly around until it settled on him, hunched over her.
The realization began settling over her as she tried to look to her left. âGenya?â His mate warbled, voice high. âWhere are you?â
There was a beat of silence as Genya hesitated. âIâm over here, sister.â
On her left; but she could not see him. She could not see anything at all. Tears began to well in her right eye. âSanemi,â her voice trembled with panic. âI canât see â I c-canât see.âÂ
Sanemi was hyperventilating as he cradled her against his chest, her hand pressed tightly over her wounded eye as her blood seeped through her fingers.âYouâre okay, youâre okay,â he said desperately, trying to tug her hand away. âItâll heal â it has to heal.â He rocked with her against him in an effort to calm them both, his lips pressed hard against her forehead. âIâll make it better â I promise, I will make it all better.â
Sanemi awkwardly bent his face towards her, slanting his mouth over hers. He tried to ignore the overwhelming taste of her blood as it ran over his lips, focusing instead on pushing his saliva into her mouth. âSwallow it,â he begged when he pulled away. A sob only bubbled up in her throat, and it made Sanemiâs grip on her tighten. A hand worked its way to her neck, his fingers gently massaging the sides of her throat, trying to work it open. âYou have to swallow it, Y/N,â he croaked, struggling to blink away the tears clouding his vision. âYou have to let me fix you.â
âBrother â we need to take her to Kocho ââ
âI can fix it,â Sanemi chanted again and again. âI can fix it, I can fix her.â
âSanemi,â the sound of his given name falling from his little brotherâs mouth made him freeze. âPlease, brother â she needs a doctor.â
He knew his brother was right; sheâd lost far too much blood already, and his saliva didnât seem to have any impact on healing the thick, jagged lines that curved down her face. Sanemi blanched the longer he studied her wounds â wounds he inflicted â and realized he could see the faintest trace of white beneath the flayed skin of her cheek.
Bone. Heâd clawed her to the bone.
ââŠLet me carry you,â Sanemiâs head snapped back to meet his brotherâs petrified yet determined stare.
âWhat?â
âLet me shift and carry you,â Genya repeated. âI can run faster, Aniki â and I donât think â I donât think ââ The younger Shinazugawa gulped. âI donât think Y/N can hold herself up on your back.â
Sanemi clutched his mate tighter against him and nodded, not trusting his ability to speak without croaking. He knew his brother was right; but Sanemi also didnât think he could stomach letting her go, even if it was to carry her home â to safety and to help. âYour tunic,â the Huntsman rasped. âDo you still have it?â
The younger Shinazugawa nodded and quickly limped toward the distant tree line where heâd shifted, a hand clutching at his side. Genya returned, the linen balled in his fists, and handed it to his brother. Sanemi quickly wrapped the cloth around his mateâs head, cooing softly at her as he coaxed her bloodied hands away from their fierce hold against her wound. He finally secured the makeshift bandage over the shredded half of her face and turned to his brother.
Genya shifted forms and crouched low in wait. Sanemi lifted Y/N in his arms, clutching herclose as he straddled his brotherâs back, one arm remaining under her legs, the other bracing her back, his hand clutching tightly around bloody arm. Once settled, Genya launched into a full sprint through the Wood, darting between gnarled trees and thick brush in his haste to get them back to the den â to Shinobu. Sanemi chanced a glance down at his fiance and his stomach dropped. Beneath the angry, dark red stains of her blood drying on her skin, sheâd turned sallow; ashen.
Sanemi pressed her tighter to him, his lips glued to her forehead.âIâm sorry.â He murmured against her cool, clammy skin, tears rolling freely down his cheeks. âIâm sorry. Iâm so fucking sorry.â
#demon slayer#sanemi shinazugawa#kinktober#kinktober 2023#kinkmas 2023#kimestu no yaiba#kny x reader#kny fanfic#kny sanemi#sanemi x reader#monster fucker#werewolf fucker#sanemi shinazugawa x reader#sanemi smut#kny smut#demon slayer smut
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
,, Bloodstained Crown ''
Yandere emperor x vengeful ex-crown prince reader
Tw/s: obsessive love, kidnapping, heavy yandere themes, rough + shameless + clingy yandere, dubcon, voyeurism, cockwarming, sex in public, power imbalance, one sided enemies to lovers, mentions of killing/death, slight gore.
They never seem to stop, those clouds. Crying all day as if mourning something important. Their tears seem to wash away the thick red liquid on the dirty floor. It wouldn't have been possible if not for the roof of the manor being in shambles. "T-t-those damned Luminayresâ", he coughs, and coughs, and coughs, almost reaching his limit and taking his last breath. The heavy rain drowns out the sobs of a young teen, clinging onto what little hope he had left. He was in utter shock, not even able to say a single thing. Nothing came out his mouth. Not even a single whimper looking at the dead bodies. Dead bodies of his parents, servants, everyone who had ever lived in that palace. Dead. In a pool of their own blood. No amount of apologies will stop this former royal from avenging them all.
Even after so many years. Perhaps even a decade has passed. You're determined to finish what they started. They made a huge mistake. They didn't check if you were already dead or not. The bullet that had been lodged into your arm is not replaced with a scar which is a reminder that no matter how much they tried to cover it up, you'll always be out for their throats. When the sun sets and the streets are empty, you look around for ways to get into the protected palace. Revenge really isnt an easy feat.
"[Fake Name]! Did I hire you to doze off or work?", a deep voice yells out from the otherside of the sunlit room. You wipe a bit of sweat off your forehead, "coming boss", you jog over with a semi clean cloth to where your higher up is. "This is very dirty, how do you expect our customers to like it?", he points at one of the many displayed weapons. You notice a few specks of noticeable dust, "my apologies boss, I'll clean it all up right away", you slowly and carefully brush off the dust off of everything to make sure they look good enough for customers to stop by and look at, perhaps even buy. Your salary here isn't worth the work you're doing but as long as you can keep a roof over your head and food on the table, you'll be fine. It's way better than being on the streets afterall. This is almost your way of moving on. Even if it's not affective in the slightest.
After dusting off most of the armour, the doorbell chimes. A man walks in wearing armour. Someone who works for the royal family that's for sure. The boss is almost taken aback but keeps his composure, "W-welcome honorable soldier!", he instantly lightens up, a huge smile on his face while you freeze in place, not daring to face the man who has just entered the shop. The soldier doesn't say anything, only looking around, searching for something. "Do you have a blade with a handle made out of gems? Specifically diamonds", the boss is even more taken aback, as if the shop has anything that valuable. "My deepest apologies honorable soldier, I fear we do not have anything that fits that description", he frowns, "do you take custom orders?", "y-yes but I'm afraid we don't have the gemâ", the man is quickly sileneced by the soldier putting a huge sack on the ground, from a small opening, the diamond shines just enough for everyone to see, including you. "His Royal Highness, the prince will be needing this next week for his engagement, he will be personally coming to pick it up", with that, the soldier turns his heels and walks out the door, the bell chiming once more as he does.
Something about this ignited the flame in you once more. This may be your last time.
"This means more work for us", well, more of work for you. With your mind elsewhere, you almost dont hear his voice. When you realize he did say something, you give a quick nod and head towards the jewelry shop to look at some gems. Your boss didn't need to ask you too anymore, you already knew. You already know this street like the back of your hand. It was an easy task reaching to your destination.
"Mr Albert, can you help make a handle out of diamonds?", you ask as you step into the shop. Even if you didn't intend it, the two of you had became pretty close but you know that won't last long. "Of course [Fake Name]! What kind are they?", you hand him the heavy bag of diamonds, shocking him as the diamond shines brightly. "Whose are these?", "the prince's, it's regarding his engagement to the princess Elena", Albert is even more taken aback as he grabs one of the glistening diamonds with one hand while the other holds a magnifying glass to it. "This is really high quality..!", you nod, "so, how long will it take?", "perhaps 5 days if I rush it."
5 days.
5 days is all you have to prepare. This might be your only chance. Even if it's half a percent, you're willing to take that risk. This is an opportunity you've been waiting for. You don't even know if the prince will be there or not, it's just something you'll have to count on.
The rest of your work day passes by as usual, nothing out of the ordinary, nothing unique, nothing to really make you feel content with life. Though, how could you? Even after all these years, you haven't given up on what you've been seeking ever since you were just a young teen. Whatever it is, it's still near impossible to achieve in these circumstances.
You take a seat looking out to the ocean, the sun setting as you do. The view reminds you a lot of the past. The very distant and unforgivable past. The little boy who had accompanied you all those years ago. The perpetrator.
Enough of the past. You're here to enjoy the sunset and ocean breeze. You sit in silence, relaxing your body and closing your eyes for a bit. Unfortunately though, even when the atmosphere is relaxing, something about it does annoy you a bit, the sound of people murmuring as they walk behind you, on the road. You can smell something sweet and know it's from the bakery not too far from your seat. This area used to be quiet, nice, full of trees and grass up until people decided they needed more land to use for shops. Everything changes overtime, nothing you can do about it.
After just a few minutes, the sun has dissapeared from sight, the moon taking its place. It's an everyday thing, nobody finds it unusual. Once the sun is gone, the moon takes over.
You look around, some shops are closing down while others stay open for the night. That's when you decide it's time for you to get some rest. No use staying here and dwelling on the past. It can't be changed anyways. As you're getting up, a carriage drives right by you, you catch a small glimpse of who the carriage is carrying. A mere glance from their midnight almost black eyes makes you shiver. It reminds you of the ocean at night and something more. Though, you can't quite place your finger on what it reminds you of.
Those 5 days pass by painstakingly slow. Too slow for you who wanted to have the prince's severed head on your shelf right this moment. When the day finally came, you waited in the shop. Acting as if it was any other day. Well, it sort of was. The only difference being the soon to be murder weapon concealed under your clothes. Your foot tapped impatiently, wanting to hear the sound of the townspeople murmuring or giggling, causing a ruckus. It would more than likely indicate the prince's arrival. "[Fake Name] why are you tapping your foot?", your boss asks with an annoyed expression. He hates the tapping sound, it drives him crazy. Though, when you turn around, wanting to answer or apologize for the action, the door opens. "Pardon me, I'm here to pick up a custom order?", a sweet and grace-laced voice calls out from just a mere meters from you. "O-oh yes of course your highness!", the old boss scrambles to the back, searching for where he had placed such an important order. Meanwhile, you stared bullets into the royal. This was it. Your chance. Maybe even your last.
As the prince takes a couple steps to admire the shop owner's handiwork, you took this as an opportunity to get closer. "Hm? I'm alright you don't need to show me around", you glance at the entrance, a few guards stationed to keep the prince safe but you wonder, why aren't any of them by his side? That's a stupid thing to do. Leaving their one and only heir all vulnerable to any and all attacks. With a swift move, you grab your weapon and direct it to the prince's throat, pinning him to the shelf. "Oh?", is all he lets out. An interested and excited 'oh' . The blade stops just a fraction from his skin, leaving him unharmed. Even as you try to press the blade closer, aiming to slice his soft skin, your strength is no match for his.
"Your highness! Here is yourâ", the old man nearly has a heart attack on the spot, nobody would blame him if he did. "[FAKE NAME]!? WHAT IN HEAVEN'S SAKE ARE YOU DOING!?", his screams are loud enough to reach the ears of the guards outside, prompting them to turn around and look at whatever was the matter. With no hesitation, they burst into the shop, almost breaking the glass door. "Drop your weapon immediately!", one of them says while the others surround you. "Step away and nobody gets hurt", their tone intimidating, unfortunately or fortunately, not quite intimidating enough for you. "Agh, fuckers", you turn to the guards, letting the prince out of your sights for just a splint second. A terrible mistake.
With a swift move, your blade is removed from your hands. "No need to worry, I'm afraid our attacker here is quite inexperienced", you look back at the prince who now has an even wider smirk. Little do you know, he's also scanning your features, taking it all in. "Huh, your face is familiar, that attitude, not so much", you glare at the man nad try to punch him using your non-dominant hand which is also stopped by him. "Y-y-your highness! I am incredibly sorry for the trouble he has caused!", the old man is clearly referring to you, "rest assured he's never allowed to work or come near here ever again!", he's almost crying, trembling with fear as to what the royal family might do to him. The prince seems to be thinking as he pauses for a few seconds before his eyes lit up. With a firm grip, the royal heir clasps both your hands in one of his, making sure you can't make any sudden attacks on him. With the now free hand, he stretches it to the boss, "where's my dagger?", and just like that, the boss is scrambling to hand it over. Once the prince had it in his hands, he looked over at your puzzled and angry face. "Is it pretty?", he holds up the dagger to your face. You think he's about to stab you with it so you remain silent. "I'm Prince Vaelius if you haven't already known", he scans you, "and you are..[Fake Name]?", he seems unsure of it himself, wanting confirmation from you but you don't give it. "Fuck you and fuck your royal family bullshit", you spat out with venom. Most would be incredibly angry by now but not him. He finds it amusing how you have a vendetta against him and he doesn't even know you!
Vaelius takes a step, then another, and another towards the exit. The guards open the door for him, wondering what his next move would be. As the carriage door opens, you're thrown into it, followed by the prince who climbs in immediately after you. You try to kick the man but all that does is amuse the royal sicko. "Let me..off this dammed carriage!", you scream and try to kick once more, only for your ankle to be grabbed by Vaelius who pulls you closer. Your leg now sitting on his shoulder as the carriage moves slowly. "Your life's in my hands now, [Name]."
"[Name], meet Prince Vaelius", your mother, the Queen of Aldoria introduces you to the little boy infront of you. He looks about 10. Now why would you befriend such a young boy when you can play with others your age? "Go on, talk to his highness", she gives you a gentle push which makes you a bit annoyed. The little boy looks up at you, his midnight eyes almost glowing as he looks into yours. It's as if he's mesmerized by you. "H-hi!", his voice is still high pitched unlike yours. You're in your early teens so it's been a while since you've heard an annoying high pitched voice. Nonetheless, you have to be nice. "Hello, I'm [Name] [Last Name]", you reach out to shake his hand but you mom quickly puts your hand down, "it's impolite, give a little bow", she whispers in your ear to which you oblige. You give the smaller boy a bow, to which he smiles sweetly at. "Mn! I'm Vaelius!", he excitedly replies.
Arriving at the place you never thought you'd ever step foot in ever again, you feel a sense of dread wash over. However, this feeling was soon followed by anger and frustration.
The prince steps out first and holds out his hand, anticipating yours to grab his. Instead, you ignore the outstretched hand and get out yourself. Dusting your clothes as your feet touch the ground. "Are you repulsed by me?â", as he asks that, your hand grabs his collar, glaring at him, "I won't cause a ruckus as long as you keep your hands off of me", "but you're the one touching me, are you not?", he looks down at the hand on his collar which you quickly pull back, turning your attention back to the magnificent castle infront of you.
With guards surrounding the both of you, you are brought into the castle, the prince never leaving your side. As the palace doors open, there are already maids taking the prince's coat off, making him feel at home while you look at him in dissapointment. Does he not even know how to take off his coat? Anywho, you look around, taking it all in. It's been years since you've last been here. "Do you like your new home?", "home?", you instantly turn around and ask, the maids retreating to their positions. Vaelius waltz towards you, a cunning look on his face that makes you want to punch it off him, "yes, you're marrying into this family, [Name]", he takes your hand, "didn't I say not to touch me!â", Vaelius places a peck on the back of your hand, "you wouldn't want to dissapoint the entire empire, now would you?", his eyes show a glint of obsession, though it passes faster than it appeared. For some reason, you can't pry your eyes from the lovestruck prince. "What are you saying...", you're suspicious of Vaelius, just what in heaven's sake is he talking about.
Vaelius gestures for one of his servants to come over. She's holding a blade with both hands which Vaelius grabs, handing it to you, "this is for you, my dear fiancé", his voice alluring and almost commanding you to take the blade in his hands. Despite his warm smile, the air felt heavy with an unspoken tension. Neither one of you wanted to lose this unspoken battle. "Or shall I remind you of how you tried to hurt the one and only heir?", his eyes open to look at you with a fierce look in them, you feel sick to your stomach. You hate him, you hate his family but this might be your only chance in surviving and carrying out your revenge. Lose the battle but win the war as they say.
You grab the blade part, bleeding a bit as it slices into your hand, "then, I'll gladly accept, my prince", you look at him with glaring eyes as he stares back with a smile, "aren't you sweet? Come up with more nicknames before our wedding, won't you?", he gestures again to the maids and in a few seconds, those same maids are guiding you to your new room. Temporary of course. You'd be sharing the same bed as the prince soon, patience.
ËËË ê° âĄ ê± ËËË
"At least the room's nice", you mumble to yourself after seeing where you'll be sleeping for the next few days or weeks. The maids all exit the room, with one letting you know that if you ever need something, to just ring the bell near your bed. You try to take it all in. What you did, what you will do and what he will do. The prince is unpredictable, making you all the more uneasy and wary of him, but for now, you should just enjoy a lavish lifestyle. Just like all those years ago.
"The prince is a beauty isn't he?", your mother catches you off guard. The two of you are sitting on a bench in the garden while ththe prince is with the emperor, discussing a few things with your father. "What do you mean, mother?", you ask in return and she giggles, "don't think I haven't noticed your eyes constantly following his figure now", your eyes widen, face visibly flushed. You can't say anything or rebuttal her words as you know it's true. She notices this and turns to you, a sweet smile on her face, "you might as well ask him out now before he gets snatched up by a girl or perhaps another guy", she jokes but sees that your expression is uneasy, "sweetie, I don't care who you like, you're allowed to love whoever, I mean, you're a teen now! I'm practically a soon to be grandma", she laughs and you do too. The small blonde prince turns to look at you with a huge innocent grin on his face. Little did you know, the emperor had noticed this and glared bullets into you.
"[Name]~?", Vaelius calls out, leaning a bit too close to you for comfort. You throw him off of you immediately, knocking him onto the carpeted ground, "ouch!", he rubs the back of his head which had collided with the ground, something in you compells you to lend him a hand. So, you extend one for him to take and he does so. "Why did you sneak up to me like that!?", you ask, furious. He stands up, almost towering over you, you don't remember him being this tall.."I wasn't, you were just spacing out", he sighs, looking like a hurt puppy who got scolded at by its owner, "don't pull that face and why are you here anyways?", he perks up at the question, "well, you are my soon to be husband, it's only natural I'd introduce you to my father", "I've already met hi-", "no time to lose!", he drags you out the room and into the hallways.
"Father! Meet my fiancĂ©!", Vaelius pushes open the giant door to the emperor's office where Emperor Adrien sat. "What do you mean, son?â", his words are almost cut off as you enter the room, looking like you've been forced to be here, "who is that.", the emperor rises from his seat, looking down at you but not his son, "my fiancĂ©", Vaelius happily says, holding your hand up. "Vaelius Luminayre. What in the world are you thinking", his tone is calm but you can tell he's beyond furious with his one and only son. "I'm perfectly capable of choosing my spouse, am I not, father?", Vaelius is passive aggressive with his words, daring the emperor to oppose his marriage with [Name]. "And what about Princess Elena", he is glaring at you, as if decades of hatred is surfacing once more. You can only look on in silence as the argument between father-son is going on. "Oh, her? You can tell her family we won't be needing them anymore", Vaelius says as if it's the most obvious and easiest thing in the world, ignoring the fact that they had been engaged for half a year. The families had hoped for Vaelius to take her as his empress but now..things have taken a turn for the worse.
"Vaelius. You two will not have my blessing", the emperor thought his son would listen after his little threat but that was far from true. "I didn't come to ask for your blessing, father", Vaelius slyly says, you can almost see an irk mark forming on his cheek. Emperor Adrien is shocked by this response, "Do you understand that you WILL NEVER become emperor if you marry that wretched man!? Has he corrupted your mind!?", the emperor yells and throws a vase your way, only for it to be blocked by Vaelius, what have you even gotten yourself into!? "Keep telling yourself that, old man", the prince turns around, taking you with him and exiting the room as yet another vase flies across the room, hitting the closed door.
This was only the start of your new life.
After that incident, your life became...easier? Well, it was all thanks to Vaelius anyways. Somehow, a few days after Vaelius met with his father to discuss about the marriage further, the emperor suddenly approved of your marriage. With the condition that the marriage would have to be postponed until 3 months later. This was also an opportunity for you to get rid of the royal family and not be tied to them in any way. You just had to figure out when was the perfect time for your plan to be executed.
And that moment came sooner than you expected. It was midnight, you knew everyone in the palace, other than the royal guards, were fast asleep by this point. The palace eerily quiet, the atmosphere almost horror-like as you roam the hallways to look for the emperor's chambers. To your utter shock and surprise, two guards lay dead on the ground of their own blood infront of the cracked open door. "Holy shit..", you cover your mouth. Even though you had seen this countless times...this time was different, it reminded you so much of that night
You also wondered, who could have beaten you to it? With your curiosity growing with each passing moment, you decide to take a peek. Avoiding the blood and corpse, you look through the small crack of the door. Your stomach drops at the sight. The moonlight shines on the perpetrator's blonde hair, in his left hand, the head of the now dead emperor, a blade on his right. The floor and walls covered in blood, the perpetrator himself is also covered in thick red liquid. Your eyes widen as the man notices someone staring at him. He turns to smirk at you, revealing himself as Vaelius Luminayre.
"Come in, why don't you?", he beckons you in, your legs move towards him, obeying his command. Once you reached him, your legs give out, falling into his arms as the bloodied head drops onto the ground with a loud thud. "Well aren't you so sweet? Falling for me like this", your head rests on Vaelius' shoulder as he holds you by your waist. You're almost frozen in place seeing what the prince, no, your fiancé, has done to the emperor. "V-Vae...", "sshh", he hushes you, "I did this for us, [Name], you've wanted this from the beginning, haven't you?", he chuckles in a low voice, a terrifying laugh. "Now we can get married the second the sun rises, isn't that amazing?", he holds your hand and makes you face him, lifting your chin to stare into his eyes as his bore into yours. "I'll be yours and you'll be mine, how's that?", with nothing left to say, you nod in agreement, did you want this from the start..?
"[Name] I'm gonna marry you one day!", the young boy says while pouting. Another lady had been flirting with you prior before this and unfortunately the young prince had witnessed it all. He was not happy. "W-what!?", you're taken aback by his suddenness, "you can't marry me..!", you yell to which he pouts even more, "why? Is it because I'm not a pretty lady!?", Vaelius seems like he's on the verge of crying so you give in, "o-okay then, I'll marry you", his mood takes a turn for the better and he smiles, "no take backs!"
The Prince always gets what he wants. Whether that's the title of Emperor or your hand in marriage. Today marks the day he gains it all. Not only is he the emperor by law, you are also now the Imperial Husband. A title that will be bestowed to you in a couple hours time.
The wedding ceremony was nothing short of grand. Everyone was invited to witness their new emperor's marriage to the former Prince of the [Last Name] house. Most cheered for the couple while some were dissapointed. Oh the look in Princess Elena and her family's eyes, priceless in the eyes of the now Emperor Vaelius. The wedding itself was held in the Royal Palace. Usually it'd be held at a church but Vaelius wanted it to be even more grand so he chose his palace. You even had a custom made outfit fit for the occasion, a pristine white dominated suit with the colors of your house. This was Vaelius' way in honoring the late King and Queen of your kingdom. You hated him and still do probably but you can't deny that what the both of you had in the past, still remains in the present.
Even though you didnt know whether he had been involved or not, something in you wanted him to be involved in your family's massacre, at least then..you can avenge them still, with the former emperor dead and all. You can't fail them but, is it worth murdering an innocent man for? The man whom you had fallen for all those years ago no less. In this marriage, you can't tell if it's either unrequited or requited love.
"Your Imperial Highness..!", a commoner girl says as you and your now husband pass by the crowds of civilians. They're all begging to get your attention, screaming, calling out and even crying, all so that you'd notice them. Maybe theyre trying to gain your favor or maybe they simply find you captivating, Vaelius sure understands where they're coming from. He finds you absolutely irresistible and it would be natural for the public to be captivated by your beauty too. So long as they know their place in his empire. You turn to face the girl who called out for you, her face full of joy despite her shabby clothing and dirty appearance. Why was she so happy just to get a glimpse of you? You'll have to get used to this life now.
What you probably can't get used to is your new life with the Emperor Vaelius. The moment the two of you stepped into your new shared chambers, Vaelius wasted no time in pushing you onto the bed, "Vaelius! What are you doing!?", "we're married now, aren't we? Let's spend the first night like husband and wife", he licks his lips at the sight of you sprawled on the bed. He's been waiting all this time for your return and his want for you can no longer be suppressed.
Without a second thought, Vaelius attacks your neck, littering it with kisses and hickeys. The pain was bearable, but the way he licked you really did send shivers down your spine, this sensation is very new to you. Instead of pushing him off, your hands pull him closer, something compells you to. It's as if the you from all those years ago came back, wanting to hold the now Emperor Vaelius. You close your eyes in pleasure, containing the moans threatening to escape your mouth. "You like this, huh", he speaks against your sensitive skin, making you all the more turned on. "M..mhm", you manage to get out. Vaelius then pulls back, looking at your mesmeric expression. "My...beloved [Name]...", your name rolls off his tongue over and over again as if he's afraid of the possibility of not being able to utter that name anymore. "Never leave me again", it sounds more like a demand rather than a plea. Before you could respond, he took both your hands with his left, his lips pressed against yours while his right hand is wandering down to your pants. Stopping to unzip them. If this was any other piece of clothing, he would have ripped it open. But since it's your wedding outfit, he'd like to keep it intact.
With his hand rubbing your cock, you reach out for said hand, wanting it to stop as you already feel to much pleasure. Never in your life would you have even thought that your first love would be touching you like this, as your husband no less. "Hm? Do you not like it?", Vaelius knows you like it, he just wants to hear those words come out your mouth. "Or would you like it more back there?", his hand wanders towards your hole, a finger pressing on the entrance as you moan just by his touch. His finger stays firmly pressed against your needy hole for a few seconds, enough for you to whine, "Vaelius..just put it in already!", a command he obeys as he immediately inserts a finger into your hole, you close your eyes due to the unfamiliar feeling, it feels weirdly pleasureful. Something in you wants more, something bigger, but you dont voice that out. Though, you neednt say anything for him to know what you want. He pushes in a second finger in, making you cling onto him.
"..ah...NGH...!?", you almost let out a loud moan as you feel your protaste being stimulated, closing your eyes in the process. Vaelius smirks, enjoying the way you're turning into putty under him. He didn't say anything as you moan out. Though, it was clear just by looking at his face, that he was thoroughly enjoying the lewd noises coming from you. Without wasting anymore time, he removed his fingers from your hole.
You felt empty, until something else pressed against your wet hole. Fuck! He's huge..! was your first thought as you took a good look at his lubed cock. You didn't even dare to estimate the size of it, "it won't fit..", a reaction which makes the emperor chuckle, "your body was made for me, of course it will fit", before you could respond or let out a snarky comment, Vaelius thrusts himself into you, gripping your waist as he does. You arch your back, eyes widen at the sudden intrusion, "f-fUcK!", you yell out, "you're so tight..", Vaelius was clearly enjoying the way your hole clenched around him. You, on the other hand, wasn't used to this. Tears form in your eyes but they dont fall. When you look back at the blonde, his face is red, seemingly lost in thought himself as he stares at his cock halfway in your hole. You felt his grip tighten and without warning, he slams his cock as deep as possible inside your ass. You let out a loud scream-like moan. The pleasure and pain hitting you all at once, "my dick feels...so good", he leans down to kiss you. You moan into the kiss, him exploring your mouth with his tongue, making you a mess as drool trickles down your chin.
You were getting used to his size due to him staying still but then Vaelius suddenly pulls out, leaving only the tip inside before thrusting it all in. "Ack..! Ah!", you moan as he thrusts in and out, leaving almost no room for you to breathe as he part his lips from yours, focusing on pounding your ass and filling it up with cum. You on the other hand, felt your eyes rolling back, your whole face flushed as you had a firm grip on the bed sheets. Your moans became louder than before, turning your now husband even more. His pupils were practically heart shaped as he looked at your messy form being fucked so hard and rough you look as if you're losing yourself.
You could see and feel the way Vaelius thrusted his cock in and out of you, your lower belly bulging whenever he went all the way inside. This sight made Vaelius all the more horny. Soon enough, he felt as if he was at his limit, "I'm gonna cum...!", as he said that, you grew more aware of your own orgasm. The more he pounded your hole, the more you felt close to your climax. "Cum with me, darling..!", he said inbetween grunts and gasps. Your body convulsed as you let out your first load in a while. Not only that, but the feeling of Vaelius' thick and warm seed filling up your hole made it all the more pleasureful for you. Unplugging his cock from your hole, his cum drips down onto the bed but the both of you couldn't care less in this moment. Lost in each other.
After a moment of silence and rest, Vaelius was the first to speak, "how was it?", "...well it was my first time soâ"You're a virgin??", "...", you gave no further comment, regretting ever letting those words out your mouth. This makes Vaelius laugh and blush, knowing he was your first love and the one who took your virginity, "then...I'll make sure your body gets so used to my cock that nobody else's can satisfy your needs, I've got to make a good first impression for you", he throws himself onto you, wrapping his arms from behind you as you face the other way, "just a warning though, I have many needs and wont stop once I start"
And oh boy was that true.
Not even a month later, and he's already bending you over the table. The official meeting table. With nobles around the both of you as he took the farthest and tallest seat. Well, at this very moment, he's standing as he has his cock all the way inside of you. Your face buried in your arms, not wanting to face the tense nobles. Some are even turned on by the sight of you getting dominated infront of them. But, if any of them stared at you for too long, two blades would come flying towards their eyeballs. Afterall, the only one who should stare at you is Vaelius. "Regarding these problems, whose idea was it?", despite his cock being warmed by you, his personality was far from it. He was cold by nature, only warm towards you. You breathe heavily, embarrassed to be seen like this. The once crown prince, heir to the Aldoria Kingdom is now being bent over by the Emperor Vaelius, full of cock as the man towering over you holds important papers, dicussing as if he's not all the way inside you right now. "I-it was mine, your majesty", Vaelius lets out a dissapointed sigh, even you knew what this meant.
In an instant, he sits down on his seat, bringing you with him. This makes his dick sink even deeper into your hole, grazing your prostate ever so slightly that it makes your hole clench, making him grunt. He was clearly unhappy with the decisions the nobles made under his father's reign. With a hand on your hips, he moves you nack and forth, grinding on his cock. Vaelius somehow doesn't let out a sound that would make him seem weak infront of these powerful men but you do. You moan into your own arm and writhe in his touch, his cock so deep inside and hitting your prostate so good. "What made you come up with such a stupid and revolting idea", even if you aren't able to see it, just by his voice, you could tell he had a sinister look on his face, looking down on the noblemen. "I-I apologize your majesty", you watch as thr powerful men infront of you scared out of their wits when face to face with Vaelius. Though, you didn't pay their reactions any attention as you were too busy focusing on Vaelius' big cock inside.
With his strong hand, he lifts you up until they can see his cock halfway in before pushing you back down on it, he repeats this over and over again. Some of the noblemen got hard but dared not to touch themselves, but especially to you. Less they had a torture wish. "...and you call yourselves powerful? Smart? Hah!", Vaelius lets out a sarcastic laugh, it was loud enough to make them all tremble. "Your majesty..weâ", "Silence.", a single word and they all felt their bodies shivering. "Get out of my face. I'll give you all a week.", they knew what he meant by this, he was goving them mercy. All of them got up, synchronized, bowing and thanking the emperor for his mercy before scurrying out the door.
This leaves you alone with the angry emperor. You wondered what would happen to you. Of course, you should have expected to be fucked dumb. Vaelius knew how to hit your prostate just right to get you screaming and slobbering over his cock. He drops the papers on the ground as of they're useless to him and holds your hips instead. You're turned around to face him and your arms wrap around his neck, "your expression...so cute", you weren't given a chance to respond, as if you could in your condition. He lifted you up and down on his cock extra rough. Those noblemen pissed him off and you're the only person who can calm him down. Using your hole. The sound of skin slapping against skin filled the entire room. Even as it's air conditioned, the two of you sweat due to the intensity of it. Your prostate was basically being abused at this point, you couldn't think of anything but his cock, your brain all mushy now because of it.
Even as you came, he still continued his rough thrusts. Making you feel even more stimulated due to how sensitive you are after coming. "Take all of my cum inside, [Name], take it all..!", he says before coming inside you. Your head resting on his chest as he hold your waist. After a few minutes, he pulls out and helps you stand before bending you over the desk once more. "I love you [Name], please take all of me", in his eyes, the look of love and lust combined. The young boy, of whom you had once found annoying, has now become the man you despise. The one you wanted to rid the world of. Yet as fate foresaw it, he now stands as the dangerous emperor who has forcibly stolen your heart. But will you let him have it?
Took two months but here it is yall (Im so sorryđ)
#bottom male reader#yandere x male reader#x male reader#oc x male reader#male reader#top male character#yandere oc#yandere male#xin's vaelius luminayre â#ă by the hands of xin ă
858 notes
·
View notes